in_o this_o question_n to_o use_v his_o own_o word_n cap._n 3._o pag._n 60._o 61._o he_o must_v confess_v unless_o he_o will_v confess_v himself_o to_o be_v ignorant_a in_o logic_n that_o this_o disjunction_n be_v employ_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o be_v govern_v either_o by_o a_o presbytery_n in_o every_o parish_n or_o by_o one_o bishop_n set_v over_o a_o whole_a diocese_n and_o this_o disjunction_n as_o it_o be_v ex_fw-la hypothesi_fw-la necessary_a it_o be_v agree_v upon_o on_o both_o side_n that_o either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o form_n of_o government_n be_v to_o be_v embrace_v and_o that_o one_o and_o but_o one_o of_o these_o assertion_n be_v true_a or_o false_a so_o it_o do_v necessary_o import_v both_o that_o they_o which_o affirm_v the_o former_a do_v give_v unto_o every_o parish_n church_n and_o her_o presbytery_n for_o the_o government_n of_o itself_o the_o same_o power_n which_o they_o take_v from_o diocesan_n church_n and_o their_o bishop_n and_o that_o they_o which_o plead_v for_o the_o government_n of_o bishop_n do_v allow_v unto_o every_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n the_o same_o power_n and_o authority_n which_o they_o deny_v to_o the_o several_a parish_n and_o their_o presbytery_n for_o as_o it_o be_v a_o foolish_a question_n if_o both_o part_n of_o the_o disjunction_n be_v true_a so_o it_o be_v no_o less_o foolish_a if_o both_o part_n be_v untrue_a or_o false_a as_o it_o must_v be_v if_o that_o power_n of_o government_n be_v not_o lawful_a for_o the_o one_o which_o be_v deny_v unto_o the_o other_o now_o to_o come_v to_o the_o untruth_n which_o the_o d._n charge_v upon_o his_o 42._o sect._n 9_o add_v sect._n 10._o pag._n 41._o 42._o refuter_fw-la he_o find_v in_o his_o assumption_n these_o two_o 1._o that_o all_o authority_n be_v by_o the_o drs._n take_v from_o the_o pastor_n elder_n and_o people_n in_o every_o parish_n 2._o that_o all_o be_v give_v to_o the_o bishop_n alone_o to_o prove_v the_o first_o a_o untruth_n he_o first_o grant_v one_o part_n of_o it_o true_a say_v the_o elder_n in_o deed_n i_o reject_v as_o a_o new_a devise_n 2._o as_o for_o the_o parishioner_n though_o for_o our_o credit_n sake_n as_o he_o say_v he_o leave_v out_o that_o dotage_n of_o their_o chief_a authority_n as_o if_o we_o hold_v it_o and_o so_o make_v we_o behold_v to_o he_o for_o leave_v that_o out_o which_o we_o never_o put_v in_o for_o where_o do_v he_o ever_o read_v that_o we_o give_v they_o the_o chief_a authority_n in_o government_n in_o they_o he_o acknowledge_v some_o authority_n in_o choose_v or_o consint_v to_o the_o choice_n of_o some_o church_n officer_n and_o 3._o as_o touch_v the_o pastor_n of_o the_o parish_n he_o leave_v they_o that_o pastoral_n power_n which_o ever_o be_v grant_v to_o they_o since_o the_o first_o distinguish_v of_o parish_n to_o wit_n their_o power_n of_o order_n as_o they_o be_v all_o minister_n and_o a_o power_n of_o spiritual_a or_o inward_a jurisdiction_n to_o rule_v their_o flock_n after_o a_o private_a manner_n and_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n the_o elder_n indeed_o have_v little_a cause_n to_o thank_v he_o but_o see_v how_o much_o the_o people_n and_o their_o pastor_n be_v behold_v to_o he_o he_o be_v content_a the_o people_n shall_v have_v some_o authority_n he_o have_v once_o say_v to_o choose_v but_o that_o be_v too_o much_o and_o therefore_o recallinge_v it_o he_o say_v to_o consent_v to_o the_o choice_n of_o some_o church_n officer_n but_o they_o must_v stand_v to_o his_o courtesy_n hereafter_o to_o understand_v at_o his_o pleasure_n who_o be_v those_o some_o church-officer_n to_o who_o choice_n they_o have_v authority_n to_o consent_v and_o who_o be_v those_o other_o some_o to_o who_o choice_n they_o have_v no_o authority_n so_o much_o as_o to_o asâent_v whether_o by_o the_o former_a he_o mean_v their_o pastor_n and_o perhaps_o the_o churchwarden_n and_o parish_n clerk_n and_o by_o the_o late_a the_o bishop_n dean_n prebend_n archdeacon_n &c._n &c._n yea_o or_o no._n in_o like_a manner_n he_o allow_v to_o the_o pastor_n of_o parish_n a_o pastoral_a power_n both_o of_o order_n and_o jurisdiction_n but_o their_o pastoral_a authority_n be_v not_o in_o foro_fw-la externo_fw-la but_o in_o fore_n consâientiae_fw-la and_o whatsoever_o it_o be_v it_o be_v delegated_a and_o commit_v to_o they_o by_o the_o bishop_n serm_n pag._n 45._o to_o who_o the_o care_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n belong_v so_o that_o the_o authority_n be_v not_o they_o they_o be_v but_o as_o servant_n to_o the_o bp_n &_o so_o rule_v under_o they_o as_o they_o be_v rue_v by_o they_o as_o at_o large_a he_o assay_v to_o prove_v serm_n p._n 45._o 46._o 47._o 51._o yea_o &_o in_o this_o defence_n p._n 42._o he_o leave_v to_o they_o that_o pastoral_a power_n only_o which_o ever_o be_v grant_v unto_o they_o since_o the_o first_o distinguish_v of_o parish_n and_o allot_v of_o several_a presbyter_n to_o they_o as_o if_o their_o power_n and_o function_n be_v not_o of_o divine_a or_o apostolical_a but_o rather_o of_o humane_a &_o papal_a institution_n thus_o we_o see_v how_o deep_o indebt_v the_o pastor_n and_o people_n be_v to_o the_o doctor_n for_o his_o allowance_n towards_o they_o 2._o but_o how_o will_v these_o part_n of_o power_n or_o authority_n thus_o allow_v they_o by_o the_o d._n prove_v a_o untruth_n in_o the_o refuter_fw-la when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o question_n be_v as_o he_o say_v whether_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v govern_v by_o pastor_n and_o elder_n with_o the_o people_n or_o by_o diocesan_n bishop_n the_o doctor_n take_v all_o from_o they_o all_o etc._n etc._n must_v not_o that_o all_o which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v take_v away_o be_v limit_v to_o the_o question_n before_o propose_v q._n d._n all_o that_o power_n of_o government_n which_o be_v controvert_v whether_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o pastor_n with_o the_o elder_n &_o people_n of_o every_o parish_n or_o to_o the_o bishop_n in_o his_o whole_a diocese_n all_o this_o i_o say_v the_o doctor_n take_v from_o the_o pastor_n elder_n &_o people_n and_o put_v the_o same_o not_o all_o simple_o into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o diocesan_n bishop_n alone_o and_o in_o this_o sense_n which_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n though_o the_o doct._n shift_v out_o of_o it_o the_o refuter_n word_n be_v true_a as_o before_o be_v show_v sense_n the_o doct._n shift_v the_o sense_n neither_o can_v the_o doctor_n without_o shame_n deny_v it_o see_v that_o external_a power_n of_o government_n which_o stand_v chief_o in_o ordain_v censure_v and_o absolve_v etc._n etc._n be_v the_o thing_n controvert_v in_o the_o quaestion_n before_o express_v which_o the_o doctor_n hold_v to_o be_v the_o diocesan_a bishop_n right_a and_o unlawful_o give_v to_o the_o parishbishop_n &_o his_o elder_n wherefore_o the_o first_o untruth_n fall_v back_o upon_o the_o doctor_n own_o head_n when_o he_o false_o say_v that_o his_o refuter_fw-la affirm_v of_o he_o that_o he_o take_v all_o manner_n of_o authority_n from_o the_o pastor_n elder_n &_o people_n and_o so_o also_o do_v that_o second_o untruth_n inasmuch_o as_o himself_o well_o understand_v and_o elsewhere_o right_o interprete_v the_o refuters_n head_n the_o d._n charge_v the_o refuter_fw-la with_o 2._o untruth_n but_o they_o both_o fall_v back_o upon_o his_o own_o head_n meaning_n in_o the_o proposition_n set_v down_o page_n 41._o to_o be_v of_o give_v to_o the_o bishop_n that_o power_n which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o several_a pastor_n etc._n etc._n and_o not_o all_o power_n simple_o as_o for_o that_o he_o object_v to_o prove_v that_o he_o give_v not_o all_o authority_n to_o the_o bishop_n alone_o because_o other_o be_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n join_v with_o he_o some_o under_o he_o as_o dean_n archdeacon_n &c._n &c._n some_o above_o he_o as_o archbishop_n and_o provincial_a synod_n etc._n etc._n it_o shall_v be_v answer_v cap._n 4._o sect_n 8._o where_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n but_o a_o other_o shift_n from_o the_o question_n which_o be_v not_o defactâ_n and_o of_o the_o time_n present_a viz_o what_o order_n of_o government_n now_o stand_v in_o our_o church_n by_o our_o present_a law_n and_o constitution_n but_o the_o ââre_n what_o form_n of_o church-government_n ought_v to_o be_v or_o at_o least_o lawful_o question_n the_o d._n shift_v the_o question_n may_v be_v as_o be_v of_o divine_a or_o apostolical_a institution_n or_o if_o dâ_n facto_fw-la yet_o it_o be_v for_o the_o time_n past_a for_o the_o first_o 200._o year_n after_o christ_n as_o the_o position_n which_o himself_n propose_v to_o oppugn_v serm_n pag._n 4._o do_v declare_v wherefore_o if_o the_o doctor_n will_v discharge_v himself_o from_o give_v all_o the_o power_n of_o government_n in_o question_n to_o one_o bishop_n
those_o 16._o position_n &_o by_o the_o refuter_n word_n whereof_o he_o take_v notice_n pag._n 38._o &_o 41._o that_o they_o subject_n their_o pastor_n and_o every_o of_o their_o ecclesiastical_a officer_n to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o congregation_n and_o their_o censure_n if_o there_o be_v just_a cause_n he_o do_v witting_o add_v unto_o his_o former_a untruth_n these_o 2._o false_a and_o shameless_a position_n viz._n that_o their_o pastor_n be_v a_o pettye_a pope_n position_n the_o d._n add_v to_o his_o former_a untruth_n 2._o false_a and_o shameless_a position_n in_o regard_n of_o that_o supremacy_n which_o they_o ascribe_v unto_o he_o and_o that_o be_v it_o not_o that_o he_o have_v a_o consistory_n of_o elder_n join_v to_o he_o as_o the_o pope_n have_v of_o cardinal_n he_o will_v be_v more_o than_o a_o pope_n true_a it_o be_v they_o say_v that_o the_o pastor_n of_o a_o particular_a congregation_n be_v the_o high_a ordinary_a ecclesiastical_a officer_n in_o every_o true_a constitute_v visible_a church_n of_o christ_n but_o they_o speak_v only_o of_o such_o church_n and_o church-officer_n as_o be_v special_o institute_v in_o the_o new-testament_n and_o if_o the_o d._n judgement_n be_v demand_v which_o be_v the_o high_a ordinary_a church-officer_n in_o such_o a_o church_n let_v he_o think_v with_o himself_o whether_o he_o must_v not_o be_v enforce_v to_o affirm_v asmuch_o of_o his_o diocesan_n bishop_n or_o at_o least_o of_o his_o archbishop_n for_o if_o all_o the_o visible_a church_n plant_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o endow_v with_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n be_v diocese_n proper_o as_o he_o confident_o say_v and_o if_o he_o dare_v not_o resolute_o affirm_v and_o for_o a_o certain_a truth_n as_o he_o dare_v not_o but_o think_v only_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 6._o pag._n 114._o that_o metropolitan_o be_v i_o say_v not_o institute_v but_o intend_v by_o the_o apostle_n why_o may_v it_o not_o be_v conclude_v that_o in_o his_o opinion_n the_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v he_o high_a ordinary_a officer_n ecclesiastical_a in_o every_o true_a visible_a church_n institute_v in_o the_o new_a testamet_n wherefore_o since_o it_o be_v apparent_a by_o the_o tenor_n of_o his_o sermon_n special_o by_o pag._n 44._o 45._o &_o 90._o that_o he_o give_v to_o the_o bishop_n a_o peerless_a power_n of_o rule_n aswell_o over_o the_o presbyter_n as_o the_o people_n of_o his_o diocese_n that_o may_v be_v true_o affirm_v of_o his_o diocesan_n bishop_n which_o he_o false_o say_v of_o the_o parish_n bishop_n that_o he_o be_v a_o petty_a pope_n in_o regard_n of_o that_o supremacy_n which_o he_o ascribe_v unto_o he_o if_o he_o have_v rather_o bestow_v this_o honour_n upon_o his_o metropolitan_a bishop_n because_o to_o prove_v that_o no_o church_n in_o the_o world_n be_v more_o agreeable_a to_o the_o form_n and_o government_n of_o the_o most_o ancient_a and_o apostolical_a church_n than_o this_o of_o england_n he_o say_v in_o that_o 114._o pag._n lib._n 2._o that_o at_o the_o first_o metropolitan_n be_v autokephaloi_n head_n by_o themselves_o of_o their_o province_n and_o not_o subordinate_a to_o any_o other_o superior_a bishop_n as_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v grant_v he_o that_o the_o title_n do_v beseem_v he_o much_o better_a because_o the_o supremacy_n of_o his_o jurisdiction_n be_v far_o large_a so_o it_o truth_n the_o d._n fall_v into_o another_o un_fw-fr truth_n in_o deny_v any_o of_o our_o bishop_n to_o be_v the_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a officer_n in_o his_o church_n to_o say_v as_o he_o do_v pag._n 45._o that_o our_o bishop_n be_v guidded_a by_o law_n which_o by_o their_o superior_n be_v impose_v on_o they_o make_v no_o more_o for_o they_o then_o the_o like_a subjection_n in_o the_o parish_n bishop_n but_o why_o say_v i_o the_o like_a since_o it_o be_v far_o great_a he_o be_v subject_n not_o only_o to_o the_o king_n his_o ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o the_o mean_a of_o his_o civil_a officer_n but_o also_o to_o the_o censure_n of_o his_o fellow-elders_a and_o the_o congregation_n whereof_o he_o be_v a_o member_n but_o that_o which_o be_v further_o add_v touch_v the_o pastor_n with_o their_o elder_n and_o people_n viz._n that_o they_o have_v as_o the_o pope_n say_v he_o have_v a_o supreme_a immediate_a and_o independent_a authority_n sufficient_a for_o the_o government_n of_o their_o church_n in_o all_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a and_o therefore_o for_o mâking_v of_o law_n ecclesiastical_a etc._n etc._n and_o that_o as_o the_o pope_n do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o superiority_n of_o a_o synod_n to_o impose_v law_n on_o he_o no_o more_o do_v they_o i_o yet_o see_v not_o with_o what_o windelace_n he_o can_v draw_v from_o thence_o that_o which_o he_o intend_v viz._n that_o the_o title_n of_o absolute_a popeling_n agree_v better_a to_o their_o parish_n bishop_n then_o to_o his_o diocesan_n bishop_n for_o be_v not_o that_o power_n of_o government_n which_o the_o doctor_n give_v to_o every_o diocesan_n church_n by_o divine_a and_o apostolical_a institution_n as_o immediate_a independent_a and_o sufficient_a for_o itself_o as_o that_o which_o they_o give_v to_o every_o parish_n else_o why_o do_v he_o for_o the_o confute_v and_o supress_v of_o their_o parishonal_a government_n set_v down_o this_o assertion_n namely_o that_o the_o visible_a church_n such_o as_o he_o speak_v of_o endow_v with_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n be_v diocese_n proper_o and_o not_o parish_n the_o comparison_n therefore_o stand_v much_o better_a between_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n in_o this_o manner_n as_o papist_n say_v their_o pope_n have_v a_o independent_a and_o immediate_a authority_n from_o christ_n over_o all_o the_o pastor_n and_o people_n within_o his_o charge_n which_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n or_o universal_a society_n of_o christian_n throughout_o the_o world_n &_o a_o power_n sufficient_a for_o the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n of_o all_o church_n every_o where_o so_o siath_v the_o doctor_n and_o his_o associate_n that_o every_o diocesan_n bishop_n have_v a_o immediate_a and_o independent_a authority_n from_o christ_n over_o all_o the_o people_n of_o his_o diocese_n which_o be_v his_o charge_n and_o sufficient_a for_o the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n of_o all_o church_n within_o his_o jurisdiction_n see_v pag._n 14._o of_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o preface_n &_o serm_n pag._n 52._o as_o for_o synod_n if_o they_o be_v lawful_o call_v well_o order_v and_o their_o constitution_n by_o royal_a authority_n ratify_v the_o doctor_n can_v give_v neither_o more_o honour_n nor_o obedience_n to_o they_o than_o they_o do_v as_o their_o protestation_n show_v art_n 8_o 12._o 13._o 14._o if_o they_o want_v regal_a authority_n to_o assemble_v or_o to_o ratify_v they_o they_o think_v that_o by_o divine_a or_o apostolical_a ordinance_n their_o decree_n or_o canon_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v impose_v on_o any_o church_n without_o their_o particular_a and_o free_a consent_n see_v h._n i._n in_o his_o reason_n for_o reform_v pag._n 31._o and_o if_o this_o also_o be_v a_o papal_a privilege_n how_o will_v he_o exempt_v his_o diocesan_n bishop_n from_o be_v like_o herein_o to_o the_o pope_n when_o he_o have_v nether_a archbishop_n not_o provincial_a synod_n to_o impose_v any_o law_n on_o he_o or_o the_o archbishop_n and_o primate_n of_o all_o england_n who_o at_o this_o day_n acknowledge_v no_o superiority_n of_o any_o synod_n to_o impose_v law_n upon_o he_o thus_o much_o shall_v suffice_v to_o be_v speak_v in_o defence_n of_o those_o late_a disciplinarian_n from_o who_o although_o in_o some_o thing_n i_o confess_v i_o dissent_v yet_o i_o can_v consent_v to_o the_o d._n take_v away_o of_o their_o innocency_n wherein_o we_o see_v how_o the_o more_o he_o strive_v to_o remove_v the_o title_n of_o popeling_n from_o the_o diocesan_n or_o provincial_a bishop_n the_o more_o he_o inwrap_v either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o under_o a_o just_a and_o due_a title_n thereunto_o and_o since_o it_o be_v and_o shall_v be_v prove_v that_o he_o give_v both_o lie_n the_o d._n get_v nothing_o by_o strive_v &_o let_v he_o take_v home_o his_o plain_a lie_n sole_a and_o supreme_a authority_n to_o bishop_n in_o their_o church_n he_o must_v will_v he_o will_v he_o take_v home_n to_o himself_o that_o same_o plainelye_a which_o he_o give_v his_o refuter_fw-la in_o the_o next_o section_n pag._n 47._o because_o he_o say_v that_o his_o word_n do_v there_o imply_v and_o afterward_o plain_o affirm_v a_o sovereignty_n and_o supremacy_n in_o bishop_n over_o other_o minister_n for_o in_o the_o refuter_n understanding_n sovereignty_n be_v nothing_o but_o sole_a and_o supreme_a authority_n what_o more_o there_o be_v the_o refuter_fw-la be_v content_a to_o say_v as_o the_o d._n in_o the_o section_n follow_v will_v he_o to_o say_v in_o another_o case_n ou_fw-fr manthano_fw-mi 47._o ad_fw-la sect_n 12._o pag._n 47._o i_o understand_v
presbyter_n the_o presbyter_n to_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o bishop_n to_o christ_n and_o ask_v he_o not_o pag._n 46._o what_o a_o bishop_n else_o be_v but_o such_o a_o one_o as_o hold_v and_o menage_v the_o whole_a power_n and_o authority_n above_o all_o yea_o and_o do_v he_o not_o pag._n 30._o 31._o out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o sardis_n and_o out_o of_o optatus_n and_o hâerâm_n make_v those_o 3._o degree_n answerable_a to_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o levite_n place_v the_o deacon_n and_o presbyter_n in_o the_o room_n of_o the_o priest_n &_o levite_n and_o the_o bishop_n in_o the_o room_n of_o aaron_n the_o high-preist_n the_o very_a chief_a and_o prince_n of_o all_o with_o what_o face_n then_o can_v he_o deny_v unto_o the_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n a_o sole_a superiority_n or_o solepower_v of_o rule_n or_o say_v that_o the_o word_n sole_a be_v foist_v in_o beside_o his_o meaning_n let_v he_o weigh_v the_o force_n of_o this_o argument_n and_o give_v we_o a_o direct_a answer_n to_o it_o the_o next_o time_n he_o write_v whosoever_o ascribe_v to_o every_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n a_o singular_a pre-eminence_n not_o of_o order_n only_o but_o of_o power_n and_o rule_v eminent_a above_o all_o and_o admit_v no_o partner_n to_o govern_v in_o fore_n externo_fw-la the_o presbyter_n aswell_o as_o the_o people_n as_o their_o ruler_n and_o judge_n hold_v and_o menage_v the_o whole_a power_n and_o authority_n above_o all_o all_o subject_n to_o he_o and_o he_o subject_a to_o christ_n he_o give_v to_o every_o b_o in_o his_o diocese_n a_o sole_a superiority_n or_o sovereignty_n and_o sole_a power_n of_o rule_n but_o the_o dostor_n prescribe_v âo_o every_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n a_o singular_a pre-eminence_n not_o of_o order_n only_o but_o of_o power_n and_o rule_v eminent_a above_o all_o etc._n etc._n therefore_o he_o give_v to_o every_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n a_o sole_a superiority_n or_o sovereignty_n and_o so_o power_n of_o rule_n the_o assumption_n be_v gather_v from_o his_o own_o word_n as_o be_v before_o show_v if_o he_o deny_v the_o proposition_n shall_v he_o not_o bewray_v in_o himself_o that_o evil_a conscience_n which_o he_o charge_v his_o refuter_fw-la with_o which_o be_v resolve_v to_o oppugn_v and_o deface_v the_o truth_n can_v he_o be_v ignorant_a that_o a_o singular_a pre-eminence_n of_o power_n and_o rule_v eminent_a above_o all_o and_o admit_v no_o partner_n put_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o any_o one_o to_o govern_v all_o the_o rest_n as_o their_o ruler_n and_o judge_n and_o he_o subject_a to_o to_o none_o but_o to_o christ_n be_v not_o only_o a_o sole_a superiority_n but_o a_o very_a sovereignty_n or_o sole_a and_o supreme_a power_n and_o rule_v wherefore_o how_o soever_o every_o superiority_n in_o power_n or_o majority_n of_o rule_n be_v not_o a_o sole_a or_o supreme_a power_n or_o superiority_n &c_n &c_n yet_o the_o refuter_fw-la have_v right_o affirm_v and_o the_o doctor_n have_v with_o check_n of_o conscience_n i_o fear_v deny_v the_o power_n of_o rule_n which_o he_o ascribe_v to_o bishop_n to_o be_v a_o sole_a power_n and_o touch_v our_o own_o bishop_n though_o he_o be_v loath_a to_o acknowledge_v 8._o sect._n 8._o in_o plain_a term_n that_o they_o be_v sole_a roll_a bishop_n yet_o he_o affirm_v that_o which_o will_v easy_o evince_v it_o to_o be_v a_o truth_n for_o to_o let_v pass_v what_o he_o say_v serm_n pag._n 40._o concern_v ordination_n that_o the_o power_n thereof_o be_v ascribe_v and_o appropriate_v to_o the_o bishop_n alone_o and_o that_o however_o by_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n the_o presbyter_n be_v to_o impose_v hand_n with_o the_o bishop_n yet_o it_o be_v then_o as_o now_o with_o we_o not_o for_o necessity_n but_o for_o great_a solemn_o etc._n etc._n to_o let_v this_o pass_v i_o say_v he_o confess_v lib._n 1._o cap._n 8._o pag._n 192._o that_o the_o advice_n and_o assistance_n of_o presbyter_n which_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n use_v grow_v long_o since_o out_o of_o use_n because_o it_o seem_v needless_a both_o to_o the_o presbyter_n desyre_v their_o ease_n and_o to_o the_o bishop_n desyre_v to_o rule_v alone_o and_o to_o take_v a_o way_n all_o show_n of_o difference_n between_o those_o ancient_n and_o our_o bishop_n who_o have_v not_o the_o like_a assistance_n of_o their_o presbyter_n that_o they_o have_v in_o former_a age_n he_o tell_v we_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 5._o pag._n 111._o that_o when_o bishop_n use_v the_o advice_n of_o their_o presbyter_n the_o sway_n of_o their_o authority_n be_v nothing_o less_o than_o when_o they_o use_v it_o not_o for_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o presbyter_n be_v to_o help_v and_o aduâse_n but_o never_o to_o over-rule_v the_o bishop_n like_v as_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o prince_n who_o use_v the_o advice_n of_o his_o council_n be_v nothing_o the_o less_o for_o it_o but_o the_o more_o advise_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o late_a speech_n be_v not_o here_o to_o be_v examine_v nor_o yet_o how_o well_o the_o former_a do_v accord_n with_o the_o late_a there_o will_v come_v a_o fit_a time_n for_o it_o hereafter_o for_o the_o present_a purpose_n it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o observe_v 1._o that_o if_o a_o desire_n in_o bishop_n to_o rule_v alone_o be_v one_o cause_n why_o the_o assistance_n which_o former_o they_o have_v of_o their_o presbyter_n grow_v out_o of_o use_n it_o may_v well_o be_v think_v that_o we_o do_v now_o rule_v alone_o see_v they_o have_v no_o such_o assistance_n as_o they_o have_v 2._o neither_o can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o if_o that_o assistance_n which_o once_o they_o have_v be_v not_o to_o restrain_v they_o of_o their_o will_n but_o only_o to_o yield_v they_o that_o help_n that_o great_a prince_n &_o free_a monarch_n have_v of_o their_o grave_a counsellor_n by_o who_o they_o be_v advise_v in_o their_o affair_n of_o state_n here_o therefore_o i_o crave_v his_o answer_n to_o this_o argument_n whosoever_o in_o their_o government_n &_o proceed_v to_o give_v sentence_n in_o any_o cause_n that_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o they_o have_v no_o assistance_n of_o any_o to_o restrain_v they_o from_o swââing_v the_o matter_n as_o please_v they_o they_o have_v a_o sole_a power_n of_o rule_n or_o do_v rule_v by_o their_o sole_a authority_n but_o our_o english_a prelate_n iâ_n their_o episcopal_a government_n and_o in_o proceed_v to_o give_v sentence_n in_o any_o cause_n that_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o they_o have_v no_o assistance_n of_o any_o to_o restrain_v they_o fâom_o sway_v the_o matter_n as_o pleâseth_v they_o insinuatâth_v let_v not_o the_o d._n be_v ashamed_a to_o speak_v plain_o what_o he_o close_o insinuatâth_v therefore_o they_o have_v a_o sole_a power_n of_o rule_n or_o do_v rule_v by_o theiâ_n sole_a authority_n the_o proposition_n i_o suppose_v to_o be_v so_o clear_a that_o the_o doct._n will_v not_o deny_v it_o the_o assumption_n be_v already_o acknowledge_v for_o true_a by_o himself_o i_o hope_v therefore_o in_o his_o next_o defence_n he_o will_v embrace_v the_o conclusion_n and_o esteem_v it_o no_o long_o a_o odious_a and_o absurd_a asserti_fw-la on_o for_o why_o shall_v he_o be_v ashamed_a to_o speak_v that_o plain_o which_o he_o do_v close_o insinuate_v the_o rather_o for_o that_o one_o of_o his_o fellow_n doct._n d._n dove_n i_o mean_v in_o his_o defence_n of_o church-government_n pag._n 19_o come_v to_o speak_v of_o a_o diocesan_n d._n bishop_n rule_v by_o his_o sole_a power_n say_v that_o this_o be_v the_o chief_a matter_n now_o in_o question_n and_o further_a pag._n 20._o that_o he_o may_v speak_v something_o for_o the_o justification_n of_o the_o bishop_n rule_v by_o their_o sole_a authority_n affirm_v that_o timothy_n &_o titus_n be_v such_o bishop_n now_o no_o doubt_n the_o doctor_n will_v expect_v a_o answer_n to_o that_o which_o be_v overpass_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n as_o impertinent_a to_o the_o point_n then_o in_o hand_n viz._n that_o all_o power_n be_v not_o give_v to_o the_o bishop_n alone_o because_o that_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n other_o be_v join_v with_o he_o some_o under_o he_o and_o some_o above_o he_o etc._n etc._n lib._n 1._o cap._n 2._o pag._n 42._o and_o he_o shall_v here_o according_a to_o promise_n have_v it_o and_o that_o he_o may_v see_v the_o force_n of_o his_o reason_n i_o wish_v he_o to_o remember_v that_o christ_n say_v of_o himself_o math._n 28._o 18._o all_o power_n be_v give_v to_o mean_a heaven_n and_o earth_n and_o to_o bethink_v himself_o what_o answer_v he_o will_v give_v to_o one_o that_o shall_v thus_o argue_v in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o world_n there_o be_v other_o join_v with_o christ_n the_o father_n be_v above_o he_o 1._o cor._n 15._o 27_o 28._o and_o under_o he_o be_v both_o his_o apostle_n and_o thâir_a successor_n mat._n 28_o 19_o
20._o and_o also_o all_o christian_a prince_n ergo_fw-la all_o power_n be_v not_o give_v to_o christ_n alone_o neither_o be_v his_o government_n a_o monarchy_n or_o sâle_n power_n of_o rule_n if_o this_o conclusion_n do_v not_o necessary_o follow_v upon_o the_o antecedent_n then_o the_o doctor_n if_o he_o shut_v not_o his_o right_a eye_n may_v see_v the_o looseness_n of_o his_o own_o argument_n shall_v i_o need_v to_o ask_v he_o whether_o king_n james_n do_v not_o therefore_o govern_v the_o realm_n as_o a_o monarch_n by_o his_o sole_a authority_n because_o in_o the_o government_n thereof_o he_o have_v many_o subordinate_a help_n under_o he_o or_o whether_o the_o duke_n of_o saxony_n and_o such_o like_a free_a prince_n do_v not_o govern_v by_o a_o sole_a power_n of_o rule_n their_o several_a province_n because_o they_o acknowledge_v the_o emperor_n their_o superior_a have_v not_o every_o master_n in_o the_o government_n of_o he_o how_o shall_v a_o sole_a superiority_n though_o some_o have_v both_o under_o they_o a_o school_n mr._n for_o their_o child_n and_o a_o steward_n for_o the_o oversight_n of_o their_o servant_n and_o above_o they_o sundry_a magistrate_n who_o in_o the_o province_n or_o country_n wherein_o they_o live_v carry_v a_o far_o more_o eminent_a and_o pecrelesse_a superiority_n it_o be_v apparent_a therefore_o that_o the_o sole_a power_n of_o rule_n in_o our_o bishop_n be_v not_o impair_v by_o any_o that_o be_v superior_a or_o inferior_a to_o they_o unless_o they_o be_v in_o the_o same_o commission_n join_v with_o they_o as_o such_o assistant_n as_o if_o the_o case_n require_v may_v restrain_v they_o neither_o be_v their_o monarchical_a authority_n abridge_v by_o the_o power_n of_o synod_n assemble_v as_o he_o say_v pag._n 43._o for_o the_o make_n of_o ecclesiastical_a constitution_n since_o the_o king_n highness_n cease_v not_o to_o be_v a_o monarch_n though_o he_o can_v make_v new_a law_n nor_o do_v some_o thing_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o his_o noble_n &_o commons_n assemble_v in_o the_o high_a court_n of_o parliament_n neither_o will_v the_o doctor_n fear_v to_o profess_v that_o our_o bishop_n do_v govern_v monarchical_o or_o by_o their_o sole_a authority_n save_v that_o he_o forsee_v as_o it_o seem_v lib._n 3._o pag._n 22_o that_o if_o he_o shall_v plain_o ascribe_v unto_o they_o a_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n it_o may_v be_v thence_o infer_v that_o he_o allow_v no_o jurisdiction_n to_o presbyter_n and_o hold_v those_o church_n to_o have_v no_o lawful_a minister_n which_o have_v not_o such_o bishop_n as_o we_o be_v to_o ordain_v they_o and_o sure_o though_o he_o false_o charge_v his_o refuter_fw-la for_o disgrace_v his_o sermon_n with_o those_o inference_n yet_o if_o he_o have_v none_o other_o way_n to_o avoid_v they_o but_o by_o deny_v that_o he_o give_v unto_o bishop_n a_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n he_o must_v be_v content_a hereafter_o to_o bear_v this_o imputation_n that_o he_o give_v way_n to_o those_o absurdity_n he_o will_v seem_v to_o disclaim_v for_o first_o touch_v jurisdiction_n since_o he_o place_v it_o in_o that_o singular_a and_o peerless_a power_n of_o rule_n before_o speak_v of_o sect_n 7._o which_o 9_o sect._n 9_o admit_v no_o partner_n and_o subject_v all_o both_o presbyter_n and_o people_n in_o foro_fw-la externo_fw-la to_o his_o direction_n as_o their_o ruler_n and_o to_o his_o correction_n as_o their_o judge_n that_o which_o be_v already_o press_v to_o prove_v a_o sole_a superiority_n or_o sole_a power_n of_o rule_n in_o bishop_n do_v direct_o serve_v to_o conclude_v a_o sole_a power_n of_o jurisdiction_n in_o they_o for_o to_o speak_v as_o he_o do_v of_o external_a &_o public_a jurisdiction_n in_o foro_fw-la externo_fw-la which_o stand_v as_o he_o say_v serm_n pag._n 51._o in_o receyve_v accusation_n in_o convent_v party_n accuse_v and_o censure_v such_o as_o be_v find_v guilty_a accord_v to_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o offence_n by_o reproof_n put_v to_o silence_n suspension_n deprivation_n or_o excommunication_n in_o which_o respect_n see_v all_o the_o presbyter_n within_o the_o diocese_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n yea_o even_o those_o that_o shall_v assist_v he_o aswell_o as_o other_o that_o be_v sever_v from_o he_o and_o affix_v to_o their_o several_a cure_n it_o be_v apparrant_n that_o that_o majority_n of_o rule_n which_o the_o d._n give_v he_o over_o all_o can_v be_v less_o than_o a_o sole_a power_n of_o jurisdiction_n for_o who_o can_v deny_v a_o sole_a power_n of_o jurisdiction_n to_o he_o that_o be_v in_o the_o power_n and_o exercise_v thereof_o so_o lift_v up_o above_o all_o other_o in_o a_o whole_a diocese_n that_o they_o be_v all_o in_o subjection_n unto_o he_o and_o he_o have_v no_o assistant_n to_o restrain_v he_o must_v the_o parish_n bishop_n need_v be_v a_o sole-governor_n if_o he_o have_v not_o the_o assistance_n of_o a_o presbytery_n join_v in_o commission_n with_o he_o and_o be_v it_o plain_a that_o the_o judge_n in_o the_o king_n bench_n and_o common-plea_n who_o be_v assistant_n to_o the_o l._n chief_n justice_n be_v join_v to_o either_o of_o they_o as_o to_o help_v they_o in_o give_v right_a judgement_n so_o to_o restrain_v they_o that_o they_o judge_v not_o alone_o according_a to_o their_o own_o pleasure_n sââ_n his_o def._n lib._n 3._o pag._n 141._o 143._o and_o shall_v not_o also_o a_o diocesan_n l._n bishop_n hold_v &_o exercise_v a_o sole_a power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n when_o he_o be_v so_o superior_a unto_o all_o in_o his_o diocese_n that_o he_o have_v no_o assistance_n of_o any_o to_o restrain_v or_o over-rule_v he_o moreover_o if_o bishop_n only_o and_o not_o presbyter_n be_v authorize_v jure_fw-la apostolico_fw-la to_o exercise_v their_o public_a and_o external_a jurisdiction_n in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n over_o the_o people_n and_o clergy_n of_o their_o diocese_n as_o the_o d._n affirm_v lib._n 3._o pag._n 116._o if_o also_o the_o power_n of_o reconcile_a paenitent_o by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n do_v belong_v to_o bishop_n only_o and_o that_o by_o the_o power_n of_o their_o order_n pag._n 105._o then_o sure_o their_o function_n be_v dishonour_v and_o their_o authority_n impar_v by_o such_o as_o deny_v unto_o they_o a_o sole_a power_n of_o jurisdiction_n second_o concern_v ordination_n the_o reader_n be_v to_o be_v advertise_v that_o he_o say_v serm_n pag._n 37._o it_o have_v be_v a_o receyve_v opinion_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n even_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n until_o our_o age_n that_o the_o right_n of_o ordination_n of_o presbyter_n be_v such_o a_o peculiar_a prerogative_n of_o bishop_n as_o that_o ordinary_o and_o regular_o there_o can_v be_v no_o lawful_a ordination_n but_o by_o a_o bishop_n and_o add_v pag._n 40._o that_o the_o perpetual_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n appropriate_v the_o ordinary_a right_n of_o ordination_n to_o the_o bishop_n alone_o and_o pag._n 42._o that_o bishop_n only_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n have_v right_a of_o ordeâninge_v minister_n regular_o and_o therefore_o though_o extraordinary_o and_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n he_o seem_v to_o allow_v of_o their_o ministry_n which_o in_o the_o want_n of_o a_o bishop_n be_v ordain_v by_o other_o minister_n yet_o this_o be_v no_o other_o allowance_n than_o he_o give_v to_o the_o baptism_n of_o woman_n or_o laie-person_n in_o the_o want_n of_o a_o minister_n for_o he_o say_v in_o plain_a term_n pag._n 44._o the_o truth_n be_v where_o minister_n may_v be_v have_v none_o but_o minister_n ought_v to_o baptize_v and_o where_o bishop_n may_v be_v have_v none_o but_o bishop_n ought_v to_o ordain_v in_o which_o word_n who_o see_v not_o that_o the_o ref_o have_v sufficient_a ground_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o d._n give_v to_o bishop_n a_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n if_o he_o will_v say_v as_o he_o seem_v to_o persuade_v lib._n 3._o pag._n 69._o that_o this_o argue_v only_o a_o superiority_n in_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v and_o not_o a_o sole_a power_n then_o let_v he_o also_o profess_v plain_o that_o minister_n have_v not_o any_o sole_a power_n of_o baptise_v but_o only_o a_o superiority_n in_o that_o power_n above_o woman_n or_o other_o laie-person_n but_o he_o can_v thus_o evade_v though_o he_o will_v see_v lib._n 3._o pag._n 105._o he_o express_o affime_v that_o the_o power_n of_o impose_v hand_n to_o convey_v grace_n either_o to_o party_n baptize_v for_o their_o confirmation_n or_o to_o panitents_n for_o their_o reconciliation_n or_o to_o party_n design_v to_o the_o ministry_n for_o their_o ordination_n be_v peculiar_a unto_o bishop_n and_o to_o the_o power_n of_o their_o order_n whereby_o they_o differ_v from_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n yea_o this_o power_n of_o ordain_v be_v in_o his_o conceit_n pag._n 106._o so_o appropriate_v to_o the_o
power_n of_o order_n in_o bishop_n that_o they_o can_v communicate_v it_o to_o any_o other_o wherefore_o though_o he_o shall_v never_o so_o impudent_o stand_v forth_o to_o maintain_v that_o he_o do_v not_o ascribe_v a_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n to_o they_o yet_o will_v it_o be_v inevitable_o conclude_v from_o his_o own_o word_n for_o whosoever_o have_v the_o right_n or_o power_n of_o ordination_n appropriate_v to_o they_o alone_o as_o a_o prerogative_n peculiar_a to_o their_o function_n and_o that_o by_o the_o power_n of_o their_o order_n yea_o so_o peculiar_a to_o their_o order_n that_o they_o can_v communicate_v it_o to_o man_n of_o another_o function_n they_o must_v needs_o have_v the_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n if_o therefore_o bishop_n have_v the_o power_n of_o ordination_n so_o appropriate_v to_o they_o alone_o and_o to_o the_o power_n of_o their_o order_n as_o be_v before_o show_v from_o the_o d._n own_o word_n it_o follow_v of_o necessâây_n that_o they_o have_v a_o sole_a power_n of_o ordination_n give_v unto_o they_o this_o be_v also_o imply_v in_o those_o speech_n so_o often_o repeat_v lib._n 3._o pag._n 72._o 86._o 93._o 97._o that_o the_o power_n of_o ordeyninge_v be_v in_o the_o bishop_n and_o not_o in_o the_o presbyter_n and_o that_o bishop_n have_v the_o power_n or_o right_v of_o ordain_v which_o presbyter_n have_v not_o and_o of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n joint_o as_o he_o constant_o maintain_v they_o to_o be_v the_o principal_a and_o most_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o episcopal_a authority_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 68_o &_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 78._o so_o he_o flat_o deny_v the_o charge_n of_o these_o affair_n to_o belong_v unto_o presbyter_n often_o the_o doct._n must_v âay_n by_o his_o slander_n and_o grant_n that_o he_o give_v sole_a power_n etc._n etc._n to_o bishop_n or_o else_o he_o cotradictââh_v himself_o often_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 79_o and_o speak_v of_o those_o precept_n which_o paul_n give_v to_o timothe_n for_o ordination_n and_o church_n government_n 1._o tim._n 5._o 19_o 21._o he_o say_v pag._n 77._o they_o be_v not_o common_a to_o other_o christian_n or_o other_o minister_n therefore_o peculiar_a to_o bishop_n so_o that_o we_o may_v safe_o conclude_v neither_o can_v the_o doct._n impugn_v it_o without_o apparent_a contradiction_n to_o himself_o that_o our_o bishop_n be_v sole-ruling_a bishop_n and_o that_o the_o singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n or_o preheminent_a power_n which_o he_o ascribe_v unto_o bishop_n as_o a_o essential_a part_n of_o their_o function_n be_v in_o deed_n a_o sole_a power_n of_o rule_n or_o monarchical_a superiority_n the_o 5._o chapter_n concern_v the_o sâate_n of_o the_o question_n and_o namely_o of_o the_o d._n distinction_n of_o ius_fw-la apostolicum_fw-la &_o divinum_fw-la thus_o have_v we_o do_v with_o the_o first_o come_v we_o now_o to_o the_o second_o point_n before_o propose_v to_o be_v examine_v viz._n in_o what_o sense_n the_o sole_a 1_o sect._n 1_o roll_a bishop_n such_o as_o we_o be_v be_v to_o be_v esteem_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n the_o doctor_n often_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o first_o institution_n as_o have_v god_n the_o author_n thereof_o but_o he_o can_v by_o no_o mean_n endure_v his_o refuter_fw-la to_o say_v that_o he_o hold_v their_o function_n to_o be_v divini_fw-la juris_fw-la orâde_fw-la jure_fw-la diâiâo_fw-la and_o perpetual_o or_o general_o necessary_a for_o all_o church_n yea_o his_o chollerâi_fw-mi so_o kindle_v thereat_o that_o he_o charge_v he_o with_o untruth_n calâmââtion_n wilful_a deprave_a of_o his_o assertion_n as_o we_o may_v see_v both_o in_o his_o answer_n to_o his_o refuters_n preface_n pag._n 2._o and_o in_o this_o defence_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 22._o &_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 138._o but_o it_o be_v already_o show_v in_o the_o defence_n of_o that_o preface_n that_o the_o doctor_n abuse_v the_o refuter_fw-la &_o deprave_v his_o word_n and_o meaning_n in_o as_o much_o as_o he_o have_v a_o eye_n only_o to_o the_o first_o institution_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o doctor_n sermon_n tend_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o say_a function_n be_v to_o be_v hold_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la by_o god_n law_n and_o not_o as_o a_o humane_a ordinance_n and_o sithence_o be_v reserve_v to_o this_o place_n the_o more_o full_a handle_n of_o those_o nice_a conceit_n in_o the_o doctor_n which_o be_v then_o overpass_v touch_v the_o difference_n betwixt_o thing_n that_o be_v divini_fw-la juris_fw-la and_o other_o that_o be_v apostolici_fw-la and_o that_o absolute_a necessity_n which_o he_o place_v in_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v divini_fw-la juris_fw-la we_o be_v now_o to_o enter_v upon_o the_o consideration_n of_o these_o particular_n first_o therefore_o because_o he_o now_o seem_v in_o this_o defence_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 26._o &_o 116._o &_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 137._o &_o 139._o to_o allow_v in_o his_o own_o judgement_n that_o distinction_n betwixt_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v divini_fw-la &_o those_o that_o be_v apostolici_fw-la juris_fw-la which_o in_o his_o sermon_n pa._n 92._o he_o propose_v in_o the_o name_n of_o some_o other_o divine_v viz._n that_o the_o former_a be_v general_o distinction_n the_o doct._n neither_o do_v nor_o can_v make_v good_a his_o distinction_n perpetual_o &_o immutable_o necessary_a the_o late_a not_o so_o he_o may_v have_v do_v well_o to_o have_v warrant_v this_o distinction_n either_o from_o the_o scripture_n or_o from_o the_o testimony_n of_o some_o orthodoxal_a writer_n fron_n the_o scripture_n he_o can_v 1._o because_o he_o have_v already_o lay_v that_o ground_n out_o of_o act_n 15._o 28._o which_o will_v refute_v it_o as_o be_v already_o show_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o say_a preface_n 2._o moreover_o it_o be_v well_o observe_v of_o sundry_a divine_n as_o aquinas_n 2d_o 2d_o q._n 55._o art_n 2._o that_o jus_o divinum_fw-la dicitur_fw-la quod_fw-la divinitus_fw-la promulgatur_fw-la and_o lubbertus_n de_fw-fr pont._n romano_n lib._n 5._o cap._n 2._o pag._n 338_o that_o jus_o dicitur_fw-la a_o jussum_fw-la per_fw-la apocopen_fw-la where_o before_o as_o he_o say_v jus_o divinum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la deus_fw-la jubet_fw-la so_o we_o may_v say_v that_o jus_o apostolicum_fw-la est_fw-la quod_fw-la apostolus_fw-la jubet_fw-la vel_fw-la ab_fw-la apostolis_fw-la jubetur_fw-la the_o true_a difference_n therefore_o if_o there_o be_v any_o between_o jus_o divinum_fw-la and_o apostolicum_fw-la stand_v only_a in_o this_o that_o the_o former_a have_v the_o express_a and_o immediate_a commandment_n of_o god_n to_o warrantise_n that_o which_o he_o prescribe_v whereas_o the_o late_a proceed_v from_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o interpreter_n of_o god_n will_v and_o his_o minister_n which_o by_o direction_n from_o he_o give_v rule_n unto_o his_o church_n to_o observe_v in_o which_o sense_n the_o apostle_n paul_n distinguish_v his_o commandment_n from_o the_o lord_n 1._o cor._n 7._o 10_o 12._o unto_o the_o marry_a i_o command_v ouk_n âgo_fw-mi alla_fw-mi ho_o kurios_fw-la not_o i_o but_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n but_o to_o the_o remnant_n ego_fw-la lego_fw-la ouk_fw-mi hokurios_fw-la l_o speak_v not_o the_o lord_n etc._n etc._n will_v the_o doctor_n now_o say_v of_o the_o former_a precept_n because_o it_o be_v jus_o divinum_fw-la that_o it_o be_v general_a perpetual_o and_o immutable_o necessary_a and_o of_o the_o late_a that_o it_o be_v not_o so_o as_o be_v only_o jus_o apostolicum_fw-la i_o hope_v rather_o he_o will_v spare_v the_o refuter_fw-la or_o his_o friend_n the_o labour_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o late_a be_v no_o less_o general_o perpetual_o and_o immutable_o necessary_a than_o the_o former_a significat_fw-la apostolus_fw-la preceptum_fw-la illud_fw-la vers_fw-la 10._o niti_fw-la expresso_fw-la verbi_fw-la divini_fw-la testimonio_fw-la non_fw-la autem_fw-la ex_fw-la revelatione_fw-la singulari_fw-la spiritus_fw-la sancti_fw-la profectum_fw-la piscat_fw-la in_o 1._o cor_fw-la 7._o 10._o suum_fw-la autem_fw-la id_fw-la esse_fw-la dicit_fw-la vers_fw-la 12._o de_fw-fr quo_fw-la nihil_fw-la desertè_fw-la expresserit_fw-la dominus_fw-la non_fw-la quod_fw-la ipse_fw-la ex_fw-la se_fw-la temerè_fw-la aut_fw-la svo_fw-la arbitrio_fw-la esset_fw-la commentatus_fw-la id_fw-la enim_fw-la se_fw-la fecisse_fw-la negate_fw-la infra_fw-la vers_fw-la 25._o &_o 40._o beza_n in_o 1._o cor._n 7._o 12._o and_o therefore_o after_o many_o other_o precept_n deliver_v by_o the_o apostle_n in_o sundry_a case_n not_o before_o determine_v by_o any_o direct_a and_o express_v verdict_n of_o god_n word_n as_o will_v appear_v to_o he_o that_o weigh_v what_o he_o teach_v 1._o cor._n 8._o 9_o 13._o &_o 10._o 25_o 29_o &_o 11._o 4_o 14_o 23_o 25_o he_o bind_v they_o all_o up_o under_o one_o general_a charge_n 1._o cor._n 14._o 37._o if_o any_o man_n think_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o prophet_n or_o spiritual_a let_v he_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o i_o write_v unto_o you_o be_v thou_fw-mi kâriou_n entâlai_fw-mi the_o commandment_n of_o god_n dei_fw-la
eutaxie_n of_o every_o church_n depend_v in_o deed_n upon_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n but_o not_o upon_o the_o invest_n of_o the_o power_n in_o bishop_n because_o his_o second_o thought_n have_v draw_v he_o to_o distinguish_v between_o potestas_fw-la and_o modus_fw-la potestatis_fw-la lib._n 4._o pag._n 102._o &_o 1_o 17._o we_o have_v reason_n to_o think_v as_o shall_v appear_v anon_o that_o he_o conâ_n the_o doct._n streyn_v his_o wit_n in_o vain_a to_o avoid_v conâ_n dream_v not_o of_o this_o distinction_n till_o he_o have_v set_v his_o wit_n a-work_o to_o remove_v the_o contradiction_n which_o his_o refuter_fw-la object_v against_o he_o notwithstanding_o he_o can_v with_o all_o his_o cunning_n avoid_v that_o necessity_n which_o flow_v from_o the_o first_o branch_n of_o episcopal_a superiority_n for_o if_o the_o unity_n of_o every_o church_n depend_v on_o the_o singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n in_o one_o during_o life_n and_o that_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o afterwards_o he_o explayn_v his_o meaning_n to_o wit_n that_o whereas_o there_o be_v many_o presbyter_n in_o one_o city_n yet_o there_o neither_o be_v noâ_n may_v be_v in_o succeedinge_v age_n downward_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n any_o more_o than_o one_o angel_n in_o a_o church_n or_o one_o bishop_n in_o a_o whole_a diocese_n how_o can_v it_o be_v deny_v that_o there_o be_v a_o general_a and_o perpetual_a necessity_n of_o episcopal_a superiority_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o unity_n 2._o neither_o will_n the_o learning_n of_o that_o distinction_n which_o he_o now_o put_v between_o pâtâstas_fw-la &_o modus_fw-la potestatis_fw-la free_v he_o from_o place_v the_o like_a necessity_n in_o the_o function_n of_o bishop_n for_o the_o exercise_n of_o that_o lawful_a power_n of_o ordination_n &_o jurisdiction_n whereon_o the_o church_n perpetuity_n &_o eutaxie_n or_o good_a order_n depend_v for_o to_o let_v pass_v that_o which_o he_o say_v serm_n pag._n 32._o how_o the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n not_o only_o do_v but_o also_o do_v consist_v in_o that_o two_o fold_v power_n no_o less_o then_o in_o a_o singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n during_o life_n he_o avouch_v in_o plain_a term_n that_o the_o power_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v for_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v not_o to_o die_v with_o they_o but_o to_o be_v transmit_v to_o they_o that_o shall_v succeed_v they_o in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o authority_n yea_o the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o they_o have_v consist_v special_o in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v not_o to_o die_v with_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n sermon_n pag._n 75._o 79._o defence_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 72._o &_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 84._o 98._o and_o 100_o that_o the_o commandment_n and_o injunction_n give_v they_o to_o be_v keep_v inviolable_a until_o the_o appear_a of_o christ_n be_v direct_v to_o they_o alone_o and_o their_o successor_n serm_n pag._n 49._o 74._o and_o that_o the_o duty_n prescribe_v for_o the_o execution_n of_o their_o office_n &_o authority_n be_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 77._o and_o which_o be_v yet_o more_o he_o add_v that_o their_o successor_n be_v bishop_n only_o yea_o diocesan_n bishop_n serm_n pag._n 75._o lib._n 4._o pag._n 85._o and_o that_o not_o the_o facto_fw-la only_o but_o also_o the_o jure_fw-la ibid._n and_o that_o presbyter_n neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v their_o successor_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 73._o and_o that_o neither_o be_v those_o instruction_n give_v in_o general_a to_o presbyter_n neither_o do_v the_o charge_n of_o those_o affair_n belong_v unto_o they_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 79._o wherefore_o also_o he_o affirm_v or_o rather_o from_o the_o premise_n conclude_v that_o the_o epistle_n write_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v the_o very_a pattern_n and_o precedent_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n and_o purposely_o write_v to_o inform_v not_o timothy_n and_o titus_n alone_o but_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n viz._n all_o bishop_n to_o the_o world_n end_n how_o to_o exercise_v their_o function_n serm_n pag._n 72._o 73._o defence_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 75._o 83._o yea_o and_o further_o say_v that_o those_o precept_n 1._o tim._n 5._o 19_o 22._o be_v perpetual_a direction_n which_o be_v not_o common_a either_o to_o other_o christian_n or_o to_o other_o minister_n therefore_o peculiar_a to_o bishop_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 77._o thus_o function_n it_o be_v sufficient_o prove_v that_o the_o d._n hold_v a_o perpetual_a necessity_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n have_v we_o see_v at_o large_a the_o doctor_n judgement_n now_o to_o âay_n all_o these_o thing_n together_o if_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n and_o not_o so_o only_o but_o also_o the_o function_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v be_v not_o to_o die_v with_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v transmit_v unto_o and_o continue_v in_o bishop_n because_o bishop_n and_o not_o presbyter_n be_v their_o successor_n even_o de_fw-la jure_fw-la and_o not_o the_o facto_fw-la only_o and_o if_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n as_o also_o because_o the_o charge_n of_o those_o affair_n viz._n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o presbyter_n nor_o be_v common_a to_o other_o christian_n or_o minister_n the_o commandment_n and_o injunction_n give_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n to_o be_v inviolable_o keep_v till_o christ_n come_n be_v direct_v unto_o bishop_n only_o i_o will_v glad_o hear_v with_o what_o new_a distinction_n the_o doctor_n who_o direct_o and_o express_o affirm_v the_o premise_n can_v discharge_v himself_o from_o imply_v or_o teach_v himin_n the_o doct._n himself_o cut_v the_o throat_n of_o his_o own_o distinction_n and_o have_v not_o one_o hole_n to_o hide_v himin_n by_o necessary_a consequence_n that_o the_o episcopal_a function_n be_v appoint_v for_o the_o perpetual_a use_n of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v retain_v in_o all_o church_n till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n his_o conjoin_v together_o timothy_n function_n and_o authority_n to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n cut_v the_o throat_n of_o his_o distinction_n betwixt_o potestas_fw-la &_o mâdus_fw-la potestatis_fw-la neither_o can_v he_o fly_v to_o that_o start_a hole_n wherein_o he_o hide_v his_o head_n his_o heel_n at_o least_o hang_v out_o lib._n 3._o pag._n 57_o lin_v ult_n when_o he_o expound_v his_o word_n be_v to_o be_v retain_v by_o meet_v or_o fit_a expedient_a or_o convenient_a profitable_a or_o needful_a to_o be_v retain_v for_o he_o acknowledge_v the_o power_n or_o authority_n it_o neither_o in_o seek_v succour_n the_o doct._n do_v nothing_o but_o contradict_v in_o one_o plaâ_n what_o he_o âaith_v in_o a_o neither_o self_n to_o be_v perpetual_o necessary_a as_o a_o essential_a or_o immutable_a ordinance_n of_o god_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 102._o 147._o neither_o will_v it_o relieve_v he_o to_o say_v as_o he_o do_v pag._n 146._o that_o paul_n direction_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o tim._n and_o tit._n be_v give_v though_o primary_o and_o direct_o to_o bishop_n yet_o secondary_o and_o by_o consequence_n to_o those_o who_o though_o they_o be_v no_o bishop_n shall_v have_v the_o like_a authority_n for_o he_o flat_o seclude_v both_o the_o presbyter_n and_o all_o other_o christian_n or_o minister_n from_o all_o right_a and_o title_n either_o to_o the_o power_n itself_o or_o the_o execution_n thereof_o lib._n 3._o pag._n 71._o 72._o &_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 79._o and_o say_v serm_n pag._n 79._o that_o it_o be_v much_o more_o necessary_a for_o the_o church_n of_o all_o age_n succeed_v the_o apostle_n then_o for_o the_o first_o church_n in_o their_o life_n time_n to_o have_v such_o governor_n as_o timothy_n &_o titus_n that_o be_v man_n furnish_v with_o episcopal_a authority_n in_o a_o preheminent_a degree_n above_o other_o minister_n 2._o if_o he_o shall_v retire_v at_o last_o to_o his_o first_o and_o safe_a evasion_n special_o fit_v to_o the_o question_n of_o ordination_n without_o a_o bishop_n serm_n pa._n 43._o viz._n that_o though_o such_o ordination_n be_v not_o regular_a or_o lawful_a ordinary_o as_o he_o say_v pag._n 37._o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o ordinatie_a church_n government_n yet_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n that_o be_v in_o the_o want_n of_o a_o bishop_n it_o be_v to_o be_v allow_v as_o effectual_a and_o as_o justifiable_a what_o be_v this_o but_o in_o effect_n to_o grant_v that_o there_o be_v the_o like_a perpetuity_n and_o necessity_n of_o the_o function_n of_o bishop_n as_o there_o be_v of_o sundry_a other_o ordinance_n of_o god_n which_o all_o eastern_a to_o be_v divini_fw-la juris_fw-la for_o the_o comparison_n which_o himself_o make_v pag._n 44._o between_o baptism_n administer_v by_o one_o that_o be_v no_o minister_n and_o
minister_n and_o thus_o he_o lay_v it_o down_o those_o who_o either_o be_v commend_v for_o examine_v and_o not_o suffer_v such_o in_o their_o church_n as_o call_v themselves_o apostle_n and_o be_v not_o or_o be_v reprove_v for_o suffer_v false_a teacher_n have_v a_o corrective_a power_n over_o other_o minister_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v commend_v for_o the_o former_a apoc._n 2._o 2._o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o thyatira_n be_v reprove_v for_o the_o lâtter_a apo._n 2._o 20._o therefore_o these_o angel_n which_o before_o i_o prove_v to_o be_v bishop_n have_v a_o corrective_a power_n over_o other_o minister_n the_o conclusion_n which_o the_o d._n first_o aim_v at_o serm_n pag._n 49._o when_o he_o lay_v down_o the_o part_n of_o this_o assumption_n as_o appear_v by_o pag._n 46._o and_o 48._o be_v this_o that_o bishop_n have_v authority_n to_o censure_v and_o correct_v even_o those_o presbyter_n which_o assist_v they_o as_o part_n of_o their_o presbytery_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o diocese_n wherefore_o the_o refuter_n answer_v pag._n 101._o knit_v the_o part_n of_o his_o reason_n together_o in_o this_o connexive_a proposition_n if_o our_o sau._n christ_n commend_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesâs_n for_o examine_v and_o not_o suffer_v they_o that_o say_v they_o be_v apostle_n &_o be_v not_o and_o reprove_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o thyatyra_n for_o suffer_v the_o teacher_n of_o the_o nicholaitan_n hâriây_n then_o bishop_n âad_a majoritie_n of_o rule_n for_o correction_n over_o diocesan_n presbyter_n and_o to_o show_v how_o loose_o the_o consequent_a be_v tie_v to_o the_o antecedent_n he_o say_v that_o neither_o be_v these_o angel_n diocesan_n bishop_n nor_o those_o person_n with_o who_o they_o deal_v diocesan_n presbyter_n to_o this_o the_o d._n repli_v slanderous_a the_o d._n reply_n be_v frivolous_a false_a and_o slanderous_a that_o the_o answer_n be_v frivolous_a because_o he_o have_v before_o prove_v the_o former_a &_o his_o refuter_fw-la devise_v the_o word_n diocesan_n presbyter_n for_o a_o shiââ_n whereunto_o my_o rejoynder_n be_v that_o the_o first_o part_n of_o his_o reply_n be_v frivolous_a or_o rather_o false_a and_o the_o second_o a_o malicious_a slander_n 1._o for_o to_o say_v he_o have_v prove_v and_o not_o to_o show_v where_o be_v mere_a trifle_n and_o if_o he_o have_v not_o either_o in_o his_o sermon_n or_o any_o part_n of_o his_o defence_n before-going_a any_o one_o syllogism_n or_o enthymem_n to_o conclude_v the_o point_n which_o he_o faith_n he_o have_v before_o prove_v what_o truth_n can_v there_o be_v in_o his_o say_n 2._o touch_v the_o word_n diocesan_n presbyter_n since_o the_o doctor_n confess_v pag._n 124._o the_o word_n to_o be_v use_v in_o some_o counsel_n grant_v the_o word_n may_v be_v use_v in_o a_o sense_n and_o urge_v by_o the_o refuter_fw-la in_o the_o argument_n which_o he_o frame_v before_o and_o after_o as_o may_v be_v see_v page_n 99_o 100_o 102._o &_o 104._o of_o his_o answer_n be_v it_o not_o a_o malicious_a slander_n to_o say_v he_o devise_v it_o aâd_v that_o for_o a_o shift_n especial_o see_v in_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o answer_n to_o this_o argument_n he_o make_v no_o advantage_n of_o the_o word_n diocesan_n but_o the_o doct._n say_v pag._n 124._o that_o he_o neither_o use_v the_o word_n at_o all_o neither_o if_o he_o have_v will_v he_o have_v use_v it_o in_o testimony_n the_o d._n understand_v not_o his_o own_o testimony_n that_o sense_n scz_n for_o those_o presbyter_n that_o assist_v the_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocesan_n government_n for_o in_o his_o understanding_n the_o country_n minister_n be_v call_v diocaesani_n council_n agath_fw-mi cap._n 22._o &_o tolet._n 3._o cap._n 20._o and_o the_o presbyter_n which_o in_o the_o city_n assist_v the_o bishop_n be_v call_v civitatense_n but_o to_o our_o understanding_n it_o seem_v that_o the_o praesbyter_n call_v diocesani_n council_n tolet._n 3._o cap._n 20._o be_v oppose_v to_o another_o sort_n there_o term_v locale_n be_v not_o country_n minister_n affix_v to_o particular_a place_n but_o rather_o member_n of_o that_o college_n or_o presbytery_n which_o assist_v the_o bishop_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o diocese_n the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n be_v these_o hâ_n verò_fw-la clerici_fw-la tam_fw-la locale_n quam_fw-la diocefani_fw-la qui_fw-la se_fw-la ab_fw-la episcopo_fw-la gravati_fw-la cognoverint_fw-la querelas_fw-la svas_fw-la ad_fw-la metropolitanum_n defer_v non_fw-la differant_fw-la neither_o do_v the_o council_n of_o agatha_n cap._n 22._o distinguish_v they_o from_o the_o city_n presbyter_n as_o the_o doctor_n will_v persuade_v but_o rather_o give_v both_o name_n to_o the_o same_o person_n id_fw-la statuinus_fw-la quod_fw-la omnes_fw-la jubent_fw-la ut_fw-la civitatense_n sive_fw-la diocesani_fw-la presbyteri_fw-la vel_fw-la clerici_fw-la salvo_fw-la jure_fw-la ecclesie_n rem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la sicut_fw-la permiserunt_fw-la episcopi_fw-la teneant_fw-la ât_z vendere_fw-la aut_fw-la donare_fw-la penitus_fw-la non_fw-la presumant_fw-la but_o to_o leave_v this_o quarrel_n about_o word_n and_o to_o come_v to_o the_o matter_n see_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o do_v first_o intend_v by_o this_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o bishop_n have_v corrective_a power_n over_o those_o presbyter_n which_o assist_v they_o in_o they_o be_v diocesan_n charge_n be_v not_o the_o refuter_n answer_v very_o direct_a and_o pertinent_a to_o show_v the_o looseness_n of_o the_o d._n reason_v when_o he_o tell_v he_o that_o the_o teacher_n against_o who_o those_o angel_n either_o do_v or_o shall_v have_v sât_v themselves_o be_v not_o such_o presbyter_n wherefore_o if_o the_o doct._n have_v neither_o yield_v any_o such_o reason_n of_o his_o own_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v such_o presbyter_n nor_o remove_v the_o presumption_n which_o the_o refut_o allege_v for_o his_o denial_n do_v not_o the_o blame_n of_o a_o weak_a consequenceâly_o still_o heavy_a upon_o his_o shoulder_n let_v the_o indifferent_a reader_n weigh_v the_o answer_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o other_o and_o then_o give_v upright_a sentence_n first_o touch_v those_o who_o the_o angel_n of_o ephesus_n examine_v the_o refuter_fw-la ask_v pag._n 102._o be_v it_o not_o against_o sense_n that_o the_o praesbyter_n 2._o sect._n 2._o which_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n shall_v call_v themselves_o apostle_n and_o add_v any_o man_n reason_n will_v give_v he_o that_o these_o false_a apostle_n be_v man_n who_o come_v from_o some_o other_o place_n will_v have_v thirst_n themselves_o into_o the_o church_n there_o to_o have_v teach_v with_o authority_n and_o by_o right_a of_o apostleship_n and_o touch_v those_o that_o teach_v the_o nicholaitan_n haeresy_n in_o the_o church_n at_o thyatira_n he_o say_v that_o they_o also_o may_v be_v such_o intruder_n or_o it_o may_v be_v they_o be_v some_o that_o take_v upon_o they_o to_o teach_v have_v no_o call_n thereto_o but_o however_o it_o no_o way_n appear_v that_o they_o be_v minister_n and_o member_n of_o the_o presbytery_n assist_v the_o angel_n of_o that_o church_n now_o what_o say_v the_o doctor_n do_v he_o make_v the_o contrary_n appear_v viz._n that_o they_o be_v minister_n and_o member_n of_o the_o presbytery_n no_o for_o he_o will_v not_o determine_v whether_o they_o be_v presbyter_n or_o in_o a_o high_a degree_n whether_o of_o the_o bishop_n presbytery_n or_o not_o and_o whether_o of_o the_o diocese_n original_o or_o come_v from_o other_o place_n only_o he_o say_v it_o be_v plain_a they_o be_v teacher_n &_o that_o be_v in_o their_o diocese_n the_o bishop_n have_v authority_n either_o to_o suffer_v they_o to_o preach_v or_o to_o inhibit_v they_o etc._n etc._n wherein_o observe_v we_o 1._o that_o he_o acknowledge_v a_o truth_n in_o the_o main_a point_n of_o the_o refuter_n answer_v scz_n that_o it_o no_o way_n appear_v that_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o presbytery_n of_o that_o church_n wherein_o they_o converse_v 2._o and_o whereas_o he_o say_v it_o be_v plain_a they_o be_v teacher_n if_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o they_o be_v lawful_o call_v to_o the_o function_n of_o teacher_n it_o be_v more_o than_o he_o can_v prove_v his_o bare_a avouch_v that_o it_o be_v plain_a do_v not_o plain_o convince_v it_o yet_o will_v it_o nothing_o advantage_v he_o nor_o disadvantage_n his_o refut_n to_o grant_v it_o 3._o moreover_o in_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n or_o angel_n have_v authority_n either_o to_o suffer_v they_o to_o preach_v or_o to_o inhibit_v they_o &c._n &c._n either_o it_o be_v frivolous_a if_o he_o speak_v of_o no_o other_o permission_n or_o prohibition_n than_o be_v common_a to_o every_o pastor_n or_o minister_n in_o his_o own_o charge_n since_o the_o refuter_fw-la in_o that_o sense_n grant_v they_o have_v good_a cause_n and_o sufficient_a right_a to_o forbid_v such_o companion_n or_o else_o it_o be_v a_o beg_n of_o question_n the_o d
thing_n and_o to_o hold_v fast_o that_o only_o which_o be_v good_a 1_o thes_n 5._o 21._o yea_o to_o judge_n of_o the_o doctrine_n deliver_v to_o they_o 1._o cor._n 10._o 15._o and_o 11._o 13._o to_o mark_v such_o as_o teach_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n that_o they_o have_v receive_v and_o to_o avoid_v they_o rom._n 16._o 17._o moreover_o do_v not_o the_o general_a band_n of_o love_n bind_v every_o one_o free_o to_o rebuke_v his_o neighbour_n &_o not_o to_o suffer_v sin_n upon_o he_o leviâ_n 19_o 17._o and_o do_v not_o the_o apostle_n sharp_o tax_v the_o corinthian_n for_o suffer_v the_o false_a apostle_n to_o domineer_v over_o they_o 2._o cor._n 11._o 20._o wherefore_o if_o it_o be_v a_o curse_a confusion_n &_o subversion_n of_o ecclesiastical_a power_n to_o subject_v every_o teacher_n to_o the_o jurisdiction_n or_o corrective_a power_n of_o every_o private_a hearer_n and_o to_o commit_v the_o manage_n of_o the_o key_n or_o church_n censure_n to_o every_o mean_a artisan_n then_o the_o d._n may_v see_v how_o gross_a a_o error_n it_o be_v to_o think_v that_o the_o duty_n of_o examine_v or_o try_v and_o not_o suffer_v false_a teacher_n do_v necessary_o argue_v a_o power_n of_o inflict_v the_o ecclesiastical_a censurââ_n upon_o they_o and_o the_o indifferent_a reader_n may_v perceive_v that_o while_o the_o d._n labour_v to_o uphold_v the_o preheminent_a suprioritie_n of_o bishop_n he_o have_v put_v a_o weapon_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o anabaptist_n to_o overthrow_v all_o ministerial_a authority_n and_o to_o bring_v in_o a_o mere_a anarchy_n perhaps_o the_o d._n will_v reply_v that_o beside_o this_o trial_n or_o judgement_n of_o 4._o sect._n 4._o discern_v which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o christian_n &_o needful_a for_o their_o preservation_n from_o seducer_n there_o be_v another_o and_o a_o high_a kind_n proper_a to_o the_o guide_v of_o the_o church_n and_o necessary_a for_o the_o preserve_n of_o the_o whole_a âlock_n from_o haereticall_a infection_n this_o we_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v true_a but_o withal_o we_o say_v it_o be_v none_o other_o than_o a_o judgement_n of_o direction_n as_o doctor_n feild_n call_v it_o in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o church_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 13._o pag._n 222._o which_o endeavour_v to_o make_v other_o discern_v what_o themselves_o have_v find_v out_o to_o be_v the_o truth_n and_o this_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n elder_n of_o the_o church_n as_o appear_v by_o that_o charge_n which_o paul_n give_v common_a to_o all_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n viz._n to_o attend_v on_o the_o feed_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o to_o watch_v against_o the_o danger_n both_o of_o wolf_n enter_v in_o and_o of_o false_a teacher_n spring_v up_o among_o they_o act._n 20._o 28_o 31_o for_o how_o shall_v such_o danger_n be_v prevent_v by_o their_o watchfulness_n if_o it_o be_v not_o their_o duty_n to_o try_v out_o the_o lewd_a behaviour_n and_o false_a doctrine_n of_o seduce_a spirit_n and_o not_o to_o suffer_v they_o to_o spread_v the_o contagion_n and_o poison_n thereof_o in_o the_o church_n commit_v to_o their_o oversight_n this_o be_v yet_o more_o manifest_a by_o sundry_a canon_n prescribe_v elsewhere_o by_o the_o same_o apostle_n as_o when_o he_o require_v of_o every_o presbyter_n a_o ability_n to_o convince_v the_o gainsayer_n of_o wholesome_a doctrine_n tât_fw-la 1._o 5._o 9_o and_o subject_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o prophet_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o prophet_n 1._o cor._n 14._o 29._o 32._o add_v hereunto_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o aposty_n admit_v the_o presbyter_n of_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n to_o consultation_n for_o the_o try_v &_o determine_v of_o that_o question_n touch_v circumcision_n etc._n etc._n which_o have_v trouble_v the_o mind_n of_o many_o believer_n at_o antioch_n act._n 15._o 6._o 22._o 23._o it_o be_v apparent_a therefore_o that_o in_o the_o trial_n and_o examination_n both_o of_o teacher_n and_o their_o doctrine_n the_o scripture_n know_v no_o difference_n between_o bishop_n and_o presbyter_n so_o that_o if_o bishop_n will_v challenge_v to_o themselves_o a_o jurisdiction_n and_o power_n of_o correction_n over_o presbyter_n because_o it_o belong_v unto_o they_o to_o try_v or_o examine_v &_o not_o to_o suffer_v false_a teach_n presbyter_n then_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o every_o pres_n byter_fw-mi to_o try_v the_o doctrine_n of_o bishop_n &_o not_o to_o suffer_v they_o to_o spread_v any_o error_n without_o resistance_n bishop_n also_o must_v subject_v themselves_o to_o the_o corrective_a power_n of_o every_o presbyter_n but_o he_o will_v allege_v as_o some_o other_o have_v do_v that_o there_o be_v a_o three_o kind_n of_o trial_n and_o judgement_n proper_a to_o they_o that_o have_v chief_n authority_n in_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n a_o judicial_a examination_n of_o person_n suspect_v in_o open_a consistory_n with_o power_n to_o censure_v such_o as_o be_v find_v faulty_a which_o as_o it_o be_v now_o exercise_v of_o our_o bishop_n so_o it_o be_v then_o practise_v by_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n at_o ephesus_n indeed_o if_o this_o be_v true_a he_o may_v with_o some_o colour_n infer_v that_o the_o angel_n function_n be_v in_o that_o respect_n like_o to_o the_o function_n of_o our_o diocesan_n bishop_n but_o who_o see_v not_o that_o this_o plea_n be_v none_o other_o than_o a_o mere_a beg_n of_o the_o question_n for_o they_o that_o deny_v these_o angel_n to_o beg_v still_o the_o d._n beg_v be_v bps._n such_o as_o we_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v any_o such_o pre-eminence_n in_o one_o minister_n above_o another_o for_o the_o try_v and_o censure_v of_o offender_n moreover_o by_o this_o reply_n the_o cause_n be_v as_o little_o relieve_v as_o if_o a_o shipmaster_n to_o stop_v one_o leak_n in_o the_o one_o side_n of_o his_o ship_n shall_v make_v two_o or_o three_o on_o the_o other_o side_n more_o dangerous_a than_o the_o former_a for_o to_o cover_v the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o proposition_n a_o double_a error_n or_o untruth_n be_v discover_v in_o the_o assumption_n viz._n 1._o that_o by_o the_o trial_n which_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o ephesian_a church_n take_v of_o the_o false_a two_o the_o d._n to_o stop_n one_o leak_n make_v two_o apostle_n be_v mean_v a_o judicial_a convent_v of_o they_o in_o open_a consistory_n and_o proceed_v unto_o censure_n against_o they_o be_v find_v liar_n 2._o that_o this_o power_n be_v the_o peculiar_a prerogative_n of_o that_o one_o which_o be_v here_o entitle_v the_o angel_n of_o that_o church_n the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o former_a do_v appear_v in_o part_n by_o some_o thing_n already_o speak_v it_o be_v before_o show_v that_o the_o trial_n and_o examination_n 5._o sect._n 5._o both_o of_o teacher_n and_o of_o their_o doctrine_n appropriate_v unto_o minister_n in_o the_o apostolical_a writing_n be_v none_o other_o than_o that_o judgement_n of_o direction_n whereby_o themselves_o and_o their_o people_n be_v inform_v &_o guide_v in_o this_o carriage_n towards_o those_o teacher_n i_o add_v 1._o that_o the_o doctor_n can_v parallel_v the_o word_n or_o phrase_n here_o use_v ou_fw-fr dune_fw-fr bastasai_fw-fr kâkâus_fw-la '_o kai_fw-fr epeiraso_n etc._n etc._n apo._n 2._o 2._o &_o hoti_fw-la eas_fw-la ten_o etc._n etc._n ver_fw-la 20._o with_o any_o other_o text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n where_o the_o same_o word_n do_v imply_v such_o a_o judicial_a trial_n as_o he_o suppose_v to_o be_v enfold_v under_o they_o 2._o and_o since_o the_o person_n which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v try_v &_o not_o endure_v profess_v to_o be_v apostle_n and_o therefore_o such_o as_o challendged_a a_o authority_n and_o calling_n superior_a to_o that_o angel_n what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o that_o they_o will_v yield_v themselves_o subject_a to_o his_o judicial_a examination_n and_o censure_v 3._o again_o the_o text_n say_v only_o that_o they_o be_v try_v and_o find_v liar_n now_o if_o they_o be_v in_o open_a consistory_n judicial_o try_v why_o be_v they_o not_o upon_o the_o discovery_n of_o their_o false_a deal_n enjoin_v to_o give_v open_a testimony_n of_o their_o repentance_n and_o if_o they_o refuse_v so_o to_o do_v why_o do_v they_o not_o bear_v the_o sentence_n of_o suspension_n and_o excommunication_n or_o degradation_n or_o if_o any_o such_o proceed_n be_v hold_v against_o they_o why_o be_v it_o not_o record_v in_o the_o text_n see_v it_o will_v have_v make_v much_o more_o for_o the_o angel_n commendation_n then_o that_o which_o be_v express_o mention_v 4._o nay_o that_o be_v record_v which_o sound_v rather_o to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o contrary_a for_o that_o bear_v which_o be_v commend_v in_o the_o same_o angel_n vers_fw-la 3._o be_v by_o good_a interpreter_n and_o among_o other_o by_o mr_n perkins_n construe_v of_o his_o groan_v under_o the_o burden_n of_o those_o false_a teacher_n
and_o their_o haereticall_a doctrine_n of_o which_o he_o labour_v what_o he_o can_v to_o disburden_v the_o church_n but_o however_o this_o be_v take_v there_o be_v little_a reason_n for_o any_o man_n to_o think_v that_o those_o false_a apostle_n be_v in_o open_a consistory_n convent_v and_o censure_v as_o the_o doctor_n imagine_v and_o yet_o be_v it_o as_o clear_a as_o he_o can_v wish_v how_o will_v the_o second_o point_n be_v manifest_v which_o the_o doctor_n presuppose_v rather_o than_o prove_v viz._n that_o the_o power_n of_o convent_v and_o correct_v false_a teacher_n be_v the_o peculiar_a right_n of_o one_o bishop_n here_o call_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n to_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o have_v before_o prove_v that_o by_o the_o angel_n of_o each_o church_n one_o only_a bishop_n be_v mean_v will_v be_v no_o sufficient_a defence_n see_v his_o proof_n be_v already_o disprove_v cap._n 3._o sect_n 1._o 2._o 3._o etc._n etc._n and_o reason_n yield_v for_o the_o contrary_a viz._n that_o under_o the_o name_n of_o one_o angel_n the_o whole_a college_n of_o minister_n or_o elder_n be_v understand_v wherefore_o if_o a_o corrective_a power_n over_o minister_n may_v be_v right_o gather_v from_o that_o course_n of_o proceed_v against_o false_a teacher_n mention_v apoc._n 2._o 2._o &_o 20_o we_o may_v very_o well_o retort_v the_o doctor_n argument_n against_o the_o preheminent_a power_n of_o bishop_n &_o for_o the_o joint_a authority_n of_o presbyter_n in_o this_o manner_n they_o who_o be_v either_o commend_v for_o examine_v and_o not_o suffer_v or_o reprove_v for_o suffer_v false_a teacher_n in_o their_o church_n have_v a_o corrective_a power_n over_o other_o minister_n but_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v commend_v for_o the_o former_a apoc._n 2._o 2._o and_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o thyatira_n be_v reprove_v for_o the_o late_a veâs_n 20._o ergo_fw-la those_o angel_n which_o be_v before_o prove_v to_o be_v the_o whole_a college_n of_o minister_n and_o elder_n in_o each_o church_n have_v the_o corrective_a power_n over_o minister_n and_o since_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o commandment_n which_o john_n have_v to_o write_v unto_o the_o 7._o church_n apoc._n 1._o 11._o that_o the_o praise_n oâ_n dispraise_v of_o every_o angel_n belong_v in_o part_n unto_o the_o whole_a church_n a_o truth_n acknowledge_v by_o the_o best_a interpreter_n calvin_n beza_n marlorat_n aretius_n perkins_n &c._n &c._n though_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o one_o minister_n to_o wit_n the_o chief_a pastor_n or_o precedent_n of_o the_o presbytery_n be_v principal_o aim_v at_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o angel_n of_o each_o church_n yet_o will_v it_o not_o follow_v that_o the_o whole_a power_n of_o correction_n be_v his_o peculiar_a right_n nay_o rather_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o so_o far_o as_o his_o fellow_n angel_n and_o not_o they_o only_o but_o the_o whole_a church_n do_v partake_v with_o he_o in_o the_o praise_n or_o dispraise_n ascribe_v to_o he_o so_o far_o also_o they_o have_v their_o part_n in_o the_o power_n of_o judicial_a proceed_n wherefore_o if_o the_o doctor_n meaning_n be_v in_o his_o assumption_n to_o restrain_v the_o praise_n or_o dispraise_v mention_v apoc._n 2._o 2_o 20._o unto_o cause_n the_o d._n wre_v the_o text_n or_o must_v yield_v the_o cause_n one_o only_a person_n who_o he_o repute_v to_o be_v the_o bishop_n his_o assumption_n be_v to_o be_v reject_v as_o a_o erroneous_a wrest_n of_o the_o text_n contrary_a to_o the_o true_a meaning_n thereof_o but_o if_o he_o assent_v unto_o this_o explanation_n of_o his_o assumption_n viz._n that_o in_o the_o praise_n or_o reproof_n of_o the_o angel_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o minister_n or_o elder_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n do_v partake_v with_o he_o then_o must_v he_o subscribe_v to_o this_o conclusion_n to_o wit_n that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o elder_n and_o the_o whole_a ch_z do_v partake_v with_o the_o angel_n of_o each_o church_n in_o the_o power_n of_o administer_a the_o church-censure_n and_o this_o may_v suffice_v for_o answer_v to_o all_o that_o he_o have_v allege_v from_o his_o text_n or_o any_o part_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o explication_n of_o his_o text_n viz._n that_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o 7._o church_n be_v 7._o bishop_n for_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o calling_n such_o as_o we_o be_v we_o be_v in_o the_o next_o place_n to_o see_v what_o strength_n there_o be_v in_o that_o argument_n whereby_o from_o the_o title_n of_o angel_n in_o his_o text_n he_o labour_v to_o uphold_v the_o title_n of_o lord_n give_v to_o the_o bishop_n chap._n 6._o concern_v the_o title_n of_o lord_n give_v to_o bishop_n compare_v the_o same_o with_o the_o title_n of_o angel_n in_o the_o doctor_n text_n handle_v by_o he_o lib._n 3._o pag._n 150._o etc._n etc._n against_o the_o refuter_n answer_v pag._n 105._o 106._o let_v we_o now_o see_v what_o force_n there_o be_v in_o that_o argument_n which_o the_o d._n frame_v from_o this_o title_n the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n to_o justify_v ãâã_d sect._n ãâã_d the_o title_n of_o honour_n which_o in_o this_o age_n be_v give_v to_o diocesan_n and_o and_o provincial_n prelate_n his_o argument_n be_v this_o the_o h._n ghost_n give_v bishop_n a_o more_o honourable_a title_n in_o call_v they_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n then_o if_o he_o have_v call_v they_o lord_n therefore_o we_o shall_v not_o think_v much_o that_o they_o be_v call_v lord_n the_o consequence_n of_o this_o argument_n lie_v in_o this_o proposition_n that_o unto_o whonsoever_o the_o holy_a ghost_n give_v a_o more_o honourable_a title_n to_o they_o we_o may_v without_o scruple_n give_v any_o title_n that_o be_v inferior_a which_o be_v not_o universal_o true_a as_o the_o d._n i_o suppose_v will_v confess_v in_o many_o particular_n for_o the_o name_n or_o tiâle_v of_o mayor_n bailiff_n alderman_n constable_n etc._n etc._n i_o may_v say_v king_n dukâ_n earl_n etc._n etc._n must_v needs_o be_v in_o his_o understanding_n by_o many_o degree_n inferior_a to_o the_o title_n that_o he_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v give_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o common_a to_o all_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n sermon_n dignity_n and_o duty_n of_o the_o minister_n pag._n 60._o 61._o 62._o such_o as_o be_v co-worker_n and_o steward_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n but_o to_o give_v the_o former_a unto_o minister_n be_v to_o bring_v confusion_n into_o the_o church_n &_o to_o overthrow_v that_o difference_n which_o the_o law_n of_o god_n &_o man_n have_v set_v between_o civil_a &_o eccles_n function_n and_o though_o a_o man_n shall_v offer_v to_o salve_v this_o mischief_n with_o the_o like_a distinction_n of_o civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a major_n or_o king_n &c._n &c._n by_o which_o the_o d._n excuse_v the_o title_n of_o lord_n give_v to_o bishop_n yet_o i_o persuade_v myself_o he_o will_v not_o easylie_o admit_v of_o this_o disorder_n yea_o doubtless_o he_o will_v think_v it_o a_o great_a disparagement_n to_o his_o reverend_a father_n &_o spiritual_a lord_n that_o every_o painful_a minister_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v equal_v with_o they_o in_o those_o honourable_a title_n which_o do_v now_o lift_v they_o up_o above_o their_o brethren_n and_o yet_o by_o his_o own_o confession_n pag._n 61._o and_o 62._o last_v mention_v they_o have_v all_o right_a to_o those_o title_n of_o doctor_n father_n pastor_n and_o saviour_n of_o their_o brethren_n which_o be_v more_o glorious_a than_o that_o name_n of_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o now_o appropriate_v unto_o bishop_n we_o may_v take_v it_o therefore_o for_o a_o evident_a truth_n that_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n at_o all_o in_o the_o consequence_n of_o the_o d._n true_a the_o d._n consq_n be_v not_o true_a argument_n no_o not_o though_o he_o shall_v limit_v himself_o to_o title_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n i_o mean_v such_o as_o declare_v the_o same_o kind_n of_o honour_n either_o civil_a or_o ministerial_a for_o i_o make_v no_o question_n but_o the_o d._n will_v judge_v it_o as_o unbeseme_v his_o diocesan_n bishop_n to_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o archdeacon_n official_o or_o curate_n etc._n etc._n as_o for_o king_n &_o emperor_n to_o be_v call_v duke_n &_o captain_n or_o high_a constable_n and_o i_o judge_v it_o much_o more_o absurd_a to_o argue_v as_o he_o do_v from_o title_n in_o holy_a scripture_n give_v to_o minister_n to_o show_v the_o dignity_n of_o their_o function_n unto_o title_n of_o civil_a honour_n appertain_a unto_o great_a personage_n that_o excel_v in_o external_a pomp_n and_o worldly_a glory_n and_o this_o be_v the_o exception_n which_o the_o refuter_fw-la take_v to_o the_o d._n argument_n when_o to_o show_v the_o inconsequence_n thereof_o he_o say_v that_o 2._o sect._n 2._o the_o title_n which_o the_o d._n compare_v together_o
occasion_n be_v offer_v wherever_o he_o become_v but_o the_o episcopal_a power_n in_o the_o doctor_n understanding_n form_n pag._n 32._o 69._o 73._o be_v the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n ergo_fw-la the_o episcopal_a power_n be_v not_o give_v to_o james_n by_o the_o apostle_n now_o what_o be_v the_o d._n answer_n i_o answer_v say_v he_o by_o distinction_n the_o power_n of_o order_n if_o i_o may_v so_o term_v it_o james_n have_v before_o as_o those_o who_o be_v bishop_n sine_fw-la titulo_fw-la but_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n be_v commit_v to_o he_o when_o he_o be_v design_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o edge_n of_o this_o answer_n be_v bend_v direct_o against_o the_o assumption_n of_o the_o refuter_n objection_n and_o against_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o prosyllogism_n add_v for_o the_o confirmation_n thereof_o only_o whereas_o the_o refuter_fw-la affirm_v the_o power_n both_o of_o ordination_n &_o of_o jurisdiction_n to_o be_v invest_v in_o the_o person_n of_o james_n by_o christ_n when_o he_o make_v he_o a_o apostle_n &_o therefore_o neither_o of_o they_o give_v he_o by_o his_o fellow-apostle_n the_o do_v tell_v we_o that_o jame_v receive_v from_o christ_n only_o the_o power_n of_o order_n but_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n be_v commit_v to_o he_o when_o they_o design_v he_o the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n so_o in_o stead_n of_o power_n of_o ordination_n &_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n into_o which_o the_o refuter_fw-la distribute_v all_o episcopal_a power_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o doctor_n own_o direction_n as_o be_v before_o show_v he_o now_o yield_v we_o a_o new_a distribution_n of_o episcopal_a poewr_n into_o power_n of_o order_n and_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n distribution_n the_o d._n be_v drive_v to_o make_v new_a distribution_n and_o yet_o utter_o silence_v both_o the_o difference_n and_o the_o reason_n of_o the_o change_n which_o a_o man_n that_o love_v plain_a deal_n shall_v not_o have_v do_v especial_o when_o he_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o such_o as_o be_v of_o a_o very_a shallow_a conceit_n as_o he_o say_v lib._n 3._o pag._n 103._o for_o though_o they_o may_v from_o henceforth_o rest_v persuade_v that_o he_o confound_v not_o the_o power_n of_o order_n in_o bishop_n with_o their_o power_n of_o ordination_n because_o he_o make_v the_o late_a but_o a_o part_n of_o the_o former_a lib._n 3._o p._n 102._o 105._o yet_o they_o may_v stand_v in_o doubt_n whether_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n which_o now_o he_o oppose_v to_o the_o power_n of_o order_n be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o before_o he_o distinguish_v from_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n if_o the_o same_o then_o his_o answer_n be_v both_o false_a and_o absurd_a yea_o contradict_v by_o himself_o for_o when_o he_o reduce_v all_o episcopal_a power_n wherein_o they_o excel_v presbyter_n unto_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n he_o carry_v the_o late_a unto_o public_a etc._n the_o doct._n contradict_v himself_o and_o deal_v absurd_o or_o delude_v his_o reader_n etc._n etc._n government_n in_o foro_fw-la externo_fw-la with_o authority_n over_o presbyter_n and_o people_n both_o to_o guide_v and_o direct_v they_o as_o their_o ruler_n and_o to_o censure_v and_o correct_v they_o as_o their_o judge_n serm_n gag_n 45-51_a now_o it_o jame_v have_v nothing_o to_o do_v with_o this_o power_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o apostleship_n how_o shall_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v not_o make_v bishop_n as_o the_o doctor_n avouch_v sect_n 7._o pag._n 58._o have_v the_o same_o authority_n in_o this_o behalf_n wheresoever_o they_o come_v that_o james_n have_v at_o jerusalem_n or_o timothe_n at_o ephesus_n as_o the_o doctor_n confess_v cap._n 4._o pag._n 96._o again_o how_o often_o do_v he_o tell_v we_o that_o this_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n aswell_o as_o that_o other_o of_o ordination_n be_v derive_v unto_o bishop_n from_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o the_o bishop_n be_v their_o successor_n in_o this_o power_n of_o government_n serm_v pag._n 45._o 70._o and_o in_o this_o defence_n passim_fw-la yea_o he_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n each_o of_o they_o retain_v this_o power_n in_o their_o own_o hand_n while_o they_o continue_v near_o unto_o or_o mean_v not_o to_o be_v long_o from_o the_o church_n which_o they_o have_v plant_v and_o for_o proof_n thereof_o cit_v 2._o thes_n 3._o 14._o &_o 1_o cor._n 5._o serm_n pag._n 65._o def._n pag._n 63._o i_o ask_v therefore_o whence_o they_o have_v this_o power_n which_o they_o retain_v in_o their_o own_o hand_n for_o a_o time_n &_o commit_v to_o other_o when_o it_o seem_v good_a to_o themselves_o he_o can_v say_v they_o receive_v it_o by_o any_o such_o assignment_n to_o some_o particular_a church_n or_o church_n as_o james_n be_v suppose_v to_o have_v to_o jerusalem_fw-la see_v he_o deni_v they_o to_o be_v properly_z bishop_n and_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v that_o the_o power_n of_o governm_fw-la t_o or_o jurisdiction_n be_v enclose_v in_o that_o apostolical_a commission_n which_o they_o have_v from_o christ_n mat._n 18._o 18._o and_o 28._o 19_o joh._n 20._o 23._o and_o 21._o 15._o 16._o be_v it_o not_o both_o false_a and_o absurd_a to_o deny_v that_o this_o power_n be_v invest_v in_o the_o person_n of_o james_n when_o he_o be_v make_v a_o apostle_n now_o if_o to_o avoid_v these_o inconvenience_n he_o shall_v acknowledge_v that_o he_o take_v jurisdiction_n in_o a_o other_o sense_n his_o market_n be_v utter_o mar_v in_o asmuch_o as_o he_o do_v only_o in_o show_n to_o delude_v his_o reader_n impugn_v that_o which_o his_o refuter_fw-la affirm_v whereas_o in_o deed_n he_o justify_v he_o in_o his_o whole_a argument_n for_o if_o both_o those_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n wherein_o the_o d._n place_v the_o power_n and_o superiority_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n be_v give_v unto_o james_n by_o christ_n and_o neither_o of_o they_o by_o his_o fâllowe_n apostle_n they_o he_o receive_v not_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bp._n by_o their_o ordination_n have_v thus_o free_v the_o refuter_n objection_n from_o the_o force_n of_o the_o answer_n sect._n 14._o show_v 6._o error_n in_o the_o d._n answer_n doctor_n answer_n the_o reader_n be_v to_o be_v advertise_v of_o these_o error_n which_o mr_n doctor_n have_v broach_v therein_o 1._o that_o the_o apostle_n receive_v from_o christ_n the_o power_n of_o order_n only_o and_o not_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n 2._o and_o therefore_o by_o their_o apostleship_n be_v but_o as_o bishop_n sine_fw-la titulo_fw-la for_o since_o the_o d._n give_v unto_o james_n in_o regard_n of_o his_o apostleship_n receive_v from_o christ_n none_o other_o power_n than_o that_o of_o order_n which_o make_v he_o as_o a_o bishop_n sine_fw-la titulo_fw-la he_o must_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v also_o as_o bishop_n sine_fw-la titulo_fw-la and_o not_o endue_v by_o christ_n with_o that_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n distinguish_v by_o he_o from_o the_o power_n of_o order_n unless_o to_o avoid_v these_o rock_n he_o will_v fall_v into_o the_o gulf_n of_o a_o other_o error_n no_o less_o absurd_a viz._n that_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o all_o equal_a in_o power_n by_o their_o apostolical_a function_n and_o if_o it_o be_v so_o as_o he_o say_v that_o james_n have_v power_n of_o jurisdiction_n give_v he_o by_o his_o fellowe-apostle_n when_o they_o design_v he_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n it_o will_v follow_v from_o hence_o 3._o that_o the_o apostle_n give_v he_o a_o power_n which_o themselves_o have_v not_o and_o 4._o that_o those_o apostle_n which_o be_v not_o make_v bishop_n as_o james_n be_v never_o have_v that_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n which_o he_o enjoy_v yea_o 5._o the_o episcopal_a charge_n which_o james_n have_v at_o jerusalem_n give_v he_o a_o pre-eminence_n above_o his_o fellow-apostle_n not_o only_o in_o superiority_n of_o order_n while_o they_o remain_v there_o as_o before_o he_o affirm_v but_o also_o in_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n 6._o and_o consequent_o all_o other_o bishop_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v in_o the_o like_a power_n superior_a to_o the_o very_a apostle_n as_o many_o as_o be_v not_o proper_o bishop_n these_o be_v the_o doctor_n absurdity_n and_o the_o very_a name_n of_o they_o be_v sufficient_a to_o abate_v the_o edge_n and_o weaken_v the_o force_n of_o his_o answer_n yea_o under_o correction_n be_v it_o speak_v as_o it_o may_v well_o make_v he_o blush_v at_o the_o read_n of_o his_o brag_n preface_n pag._n 17._o where_o he_o say_v in_o his_o conscience_n he_o be_v persuade_v that_o no_o one_o of_o his_o proof_n in_o all_o his_o sermon_n be_v disprove_v nor_o he_o convince_v of_o any_o one_o vintruth_n throughout_o the_o body_n thereof_o so_o it_o may_v be_v a_o good_a motive_n to_o he_o no_o long_o to_o strike_v against_o the_o
sect._n 5._o add_v sect_n 4._o pag_n 78._o 79._o oecumenius_n and_o gregory_n who_o testify_v as_o he_o say_v that_o the_o episle_n teach_v bishop_n how_o to_o behave_v themselves_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v a_o secret_a confession_n that_o he_o know_v not_o how_o to_o conclude_v from_o saint_n paul_n own_o word_n that_o which_o he_o undertake_v to_o make_v apparent_a by_o his_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n &_o titus_n but_o because_o the_o doctor_n will_v needs_o fit_a to_o this_o last_o assumption_n &_o the_o proof_n thereof_o that_o answer_n which_o be_v give_v to_o another_o i_o will_v first_o reduce_v it_o to_o the_o part_n of_o his_o reason_n &_o then_o peruse_v the_o force_n which_o he_o bend_v against_o it_o whereas_o therefore_o he_o say_v that_o episcopal_a authority_n chief_o consist_v in_o those_o particular_n of_o ordination_n &_o jurisdiction_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v in_o charge_n if_o by_o episcopal_a authority_n he_o mean_v that_o which_o bishop_n have_v now_o get_v into_o their_o hand_n and_o appropriate_v to_o themselves_o than_o the_o proposition_n be_v false_a and_o the_o falsehood_n thereof_o make_v plain_a by_o that_o suppose_a case_n of_o a_o democracie_n in_o time_n change_v into_o a_o aristocracy_n and_o afterward_o into_o a_o monarchy_n lay_v down_o by_o the_o doctor_n in_o his_o refuter_n word_n pag._n 79._o but_o if_o he_o understand_v by_o episcopal_a authority_n that_o which_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o with_o their_o allowance_n be_v seat_v in_o the_o function_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n then_o the_o assumption_n and_o the_o proof_n thereof_o be_v contradict_v by_o the_o refuter_fw-la when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o direction_n give_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n for_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n apperteyn_v not_o to_o diocesan_n bishop_n for_o the_o apostle_n dream_v of_o no_o such_o sovereignty_n but_o in_o particular_a unto_o timothy_n and_o titus_n by_o a_o high_a power_n as_o evangelist_n &_o in_o general_a to_o all_o the_o presbyter_n as_o have_v the_o charge_n of_o those_o affair_n in_o their_o several_a congregation_n in_o the_o church_n right_a to_o administer_v they_o to_o impugn_v this_o answer_n first_o he_o labour_v by_o two_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n do_v not_o perform_v those_o thing_n by_o a_o high_a power_n viz._n 1._o because_o they_o be_v to_o be_v do_v by_o a_o power_n which_o be_v to_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n until_o the_o end_n 2._o because_o the_o power_n whereby_o bishop_n do_v the_o thing_n that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v in_o commission_n be_v so_o much_o of_o the_o apostolical_a power_n as_o be_v to_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n but_o if_o the_o doctor_n have_v observe_v his_o refuters_n meaning_n who_o by_o a_o high_a power_n understand_v that_o power_n of_o office_n which_o be_v invest_v in_o the_o person_n of_o timothy_n &_o titus_n for_o be_v evangelist_n he_o may_v perhaps_o have_v perceive_v the_o deceit_n that_o lie_v in_o his_o own_o reason_n for_o although_o the_o power_n of_o ordain_v and_o censure_v consider_v simple_o and_o in_o general_a as_o the_o refuter_fw-la speak_v be_v such_o as_o be_v to_o continue_v in_o the_o presbyter_n though_o now_o by_o bishop_n appropriate_v to_o themselves_o as_o he_o also_o grant_v yet_o this_o hinder_v not_o but_o that_o as_o the_o apostle_n so_o timothy_n &_o titus_n be_v evangelist_n do_v perform_v those_o work_n by_o a_o high_a power_n that_o be_v a_o power_n seat_v in_o a_o high_a office_n but_o if_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n do_v those_o thing_n by_o virtue_n of_o a_o office_n that_o be_v to_o continue_v and_o that_o the_o power_n of_o do_v those_o work_n be_v derive_v to_o bishop_n by_o apostolical_a allowance_n what_o else_o do_v he_o but_o continue_v his_o old_a trade_n of_o beg_v 2._o in_o like_a manner_n he_o deceive_v himself_o and_o his_o reader_n when_o he_o fasten_v a_o contradiction_n on_o his_o refuter_fw-la in_o say_v the_o apostle_n dream_v not_o of_o any_o such_o sovereignty_n as_o now_o be_v in_o bishop_n above_o presbyter_n when_o he_o have_v before_o say_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n do_v the_o same_o thing_n by_o a_o high_a power_n to_o wit_n of_o their_o evangelisticall_a function_n which_o bishop_n have_v now_o appropriate_v to_o themselves_o 3._o and_o he_o argue_v too_o loose_o when_o to_o prove_v a_o falsehood_n in_o the_o refuter_n assertion_n viz._n that_o those_o instruction_n be_v give_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n as_o evangelist_n he_o say_v they_o be_v give_v they_o as_o they_o be_v particular_o assign_v governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n for_o it_o be_v not_o repugnant_a but_o very_o agreeable_a to_o the_o office_n of_o evangelist_n to_o be_v assign_v unto_o the_o government_n of_o particular_a church_n at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o the_o apostle_n on_o who_o they_o attend_v 4._o in_o deed_n if_o the_o doctor_n can_v give_v we_o any_o one_o sentence_n in_o those_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n &_o titus_n show_v the_o charge_n of_o those_o affair_n to_o belong_v proper_o to_o diocesan_n bishop_n i_o will_v free_o confess_v the_o refuter_fw-la have_v err_v in_o deny_v it_o and_o affirm_v the_o charge_n thereof_o to_o belong_v in_o general_a unto_o the_o presbyter_n but_o though_o we_o have_v wait_v all_o this_o while_n for_o the_o demonstration_n of_o this_o point_n from_o the_o apostle_n writing_n yet_o we_o hear_v no_o news_n of_o any_o argument_n that_o clear_o deduce_v this_o conclusion_n from_o any_o word_n or_o phrase_n which_o paul_n use_v in_o his_o epistle_n only_o he_o say_v he_o have_v sufficient_o prove_v this_o point_n before_o lib._n 3._o wherefore_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v how_o worthy_o he_o dispute_v there_o in_o defence_n of_o his_o diocesan_n lord_n i_o will_v pray_v leave_n to_o lay_v down_o in_o open_a view_n what_o he_o here_o refer_v we_o unto_o in_o his_o three_o book_n cap._n 3._o sect_n 1._o he_o give_v a_o threefold_a superiority_n 6._o section_n 6._o unto_o bishop_n over_o other_o minister_n viz._n singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n during_o life_n power_n of_o ordination_n and_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n all_o which_o he_o ground_v upon_o tit._n 1._o 5._o and_o because_o his_o refuter_fw-la have_v deny_v titus_n to_o be_v a_o bishop_n he_o refer_v his_o reader_n there_o for_o the_o proof_n thereof_o to_o that_o which_o be_v to_o follow_v lib._n 4._o cap._n 4._o which_o we_o have_v now_o to_o examine_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o desire_v he_o to_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v in_o like_a manner_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o that_o book_n cap._n 5._o sect_n 18._o he_o argue_v that_o bishop_n have_v corrective_a power_n over_o the_o presbyter_n because_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v such_o power_n over_o the_o presbyter_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n as_o he_o prove_v if_o we_o may_v believe_v he_o by_o most_o evident_a testimony_n out_o of_o paul_n epistle_n tit._n 1._o 5._o 1._o tim._n 1._o 3_o &_o 4._o 19-22_a and_o unto_o his_o refuter_n answer_v viz._n that_o tim._n and_o titus_n be_v not_o bishop_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v never_o prove_v they_o be_v he_o return_v this_o reply_n i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o suspend_v his_o judgement_n till_o he_o come_v to_o the_o proof_n on_o both_o side_n &_o if_o he_o shall_v not_o find_v my_o proffe_n say_v he_o for_o their_o be_v bishop_n better_a than_o he_o to_o the_o contrary_a let_v he_o believe_v i_o in_o nothing_o loâ_n here_o his_o word_n and_o how_o confident_o he_o rely_v aforehand_o upon_o his_o proof_n which_o he_o mean_v to_o produce_v for_o this_o assertion_n that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v bishop_n notwithstanding_o when_o he_o come_v to_o make_v this_o apparent_a &_o that_o by_o the_o scripture_n yea_o by_z s._n paul_n epistle_n write_v unto_o they_o the_o main_a issue_n of_o his_o whole_a reason_n come_v at_o last_o to_o this_o effect_n episcopal_a authority_n consist_v chief_o in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n but_o the_o authority_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n principal_o consist_v in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n ergo_fw-la their_o authority_n be_v episcopal_a and_o consequent_o they_o be_v bishop_n here_o now_o if_o the_o proposition_n be_v doubt_v of_o or_o deny_v we_o be_v send_v back_o to_o this_o former_a disputation_n where_o he_o beg_v that_o this_o conclusion_n may_v be_v take_v for_o grant_v be_v there_o any_o likelihood_n think_v you_o that_o we_o shall_v ever_o find_v a_o good_a end_n put_v to_o this_o controversy_n when_o 81._o sect._n 7._o add_v sect_n 5._o &_o 6._o p._n 80._o 81._o we_o must_v dance_v the_o round_a after_o the_o doctor_n pipe_n in_o this_o fashion_n but_o leave_v the_o doctor_n
such_o as_o be_v nominate_v elect_v and_o present_v to_o any_o church_n 3._o to_o make_v and_o ordeyn_a rule_n and_o canon_n for_o order_n and_o quietness_n for_o diversity_n of_o degree_n among_o minister_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o those_o order_n be_v to_o be_v make_v by_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n before_o christian_a prince_n and_o after_o christian_a prince_n with_o the_o authority_n and_o consent_n both_o of_o prince_n and_o people_n again_o we_o think_v it_o convenient_a that_o all_o bishop_n and_o preacher_n shall_v intru_v the_o people_n comit_v to_o their_o spiritual_a charge_n that_o whereas_o certeyn_a man_n do_v imagine_v and_o affirm_v that_o christ_n shall_v give_v unto_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n power_n and_o authority_n over_o all_o bishop_n and_o priest_n in_o christ_n church_n etc._n etc._n that_o it_o be_v utter_o false_a and_o untrue_a again_o it_o be_v out_o of_o all_o doubt_n that_o there_o be_v no_o mention_v make_v neither_o in_o the_o scripture_n nor_o in_o the_o write_n of_o any_o authentical_a doctor_n or_o author_n in_o the_o church_n be_v within_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o christ_n do_v ever_o make_v or_o institute_v any_o distinction_n or_o difference_n to_o be_v in_o the_o pre-eminence_n of_o power_n order_n or_o jurisdiction_n between_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o between_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o but_o they_o be_v equal_a in_o power_n order_n authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n and_o that_o there_o be_v now_o &_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n any_o such_o diversity_n or_o difference_n among_o the_o bishop_n it_o be_v divise_v among_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o the_o conservation_n of_o good_a order_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o that_o either_o by_o the_o consent_n and_o authority_n or_o else_o ãâã_d lest_o by_o the_o permissiââ_n &_o sufferance_n of_o the_o prince_n and_o civil_a power_n for_o the_o time_n rulinge_v for_o the_o say_a father_n consider_v the_o great_a and_o infinite_a multitude_n of_o christian_a man_n so_o large_o increase_v through_o the_o world_n and_o take_v example_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n think_v it_o expedient_a to_o make_v a_o order_n of_o degree_n among_o bishop_n and_o spiritual_a governor_n not_o this_o it_o seem_v the_o d._n mark_v not_o of_o the_o church_n &_o so_o ordain_v some_o to_o be_v patriarch_n some_o to_o be_v primate_fw-la some_o to_o be_v metropolitanes_n some_o to_o be_v archbishop_n some_o bishop_n and_o to_o they_o limit_v not_o only_o several_a diocese_n or_o province_n where_o they_o shall_v exercise_v their_o power_n and_o not_o exceed_v the_o same_o but_o also_o certain_a bound_n and_o limit_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n and_o power_n in_o so_o much_o that_o whereas_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o all_o bishop_n certain_a of_o they_o assemble_v together_o to_o constitute_v and_o consecrate_v other_o bishop_n the_o say_a father_n restreyn_v the_o say_a power_n &_o reserve_v the_o same_o in_o such_o wise_a that_o without_o the_o consent_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o metropolitan_a or_o archbishop_n no_o bishop_n can_v be_v consecrate_v in_o any_o province_n &_o likewise_o in_o other_o case_n their_o power_n be_v also_o restreyn_v for_o such_o cause_n as_o be_v then_o think_v unto_o they_o conventent_fw-fr which_o difference_n the_o say_v holy_a father_n think_v necessary_a to_o enact_v &_o establish_v by_o their_o decree_n and_o constitution_n not_o for_o that_o any_o such_o difference_n be_v prescribe_v or_o establish_v in_o the_o gospel_n or_o mention_v in_o any_o canonical_a writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o testify_v by_o any_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n within_o the_o day_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o thereby_o contention_n variance_n schism_n &_o division_n shall_v be_v avoid_v and_o the_o church_n preserve_v in_o good_a order_n and_o concord_n loe_o here_o their_o word_n now_o observe_v we_o among_o other_o thing_n 1._o that_o they_o join_v together_o bishop_n and_o one_o 1._o that_o they_o make_v priest_n or_o bishop_n all_o one_o priest_n not_o only_o in_o the_o duty_n of_o instruct_v but_o also_o in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o key_n &_o of_o bear_v the_o spiritual_a charge_n of_o the_o people_n commit_v to_o they_o 2._o and_o in_o set_v down_o that_o headship_n of_o the_o pope_n which_o they_o disclaim_v they_o join_v the_o priest_n with_o the_o bps._n of_o christ_n church_n &_o affirm_v his_o power_n of_o claim_n &_o authority_n from_o christ_n over_o both_o to_o be_v alike_o false_a and_o untrue_a 3._o they_o say_v that_o the_o father_n devise_v a_o order_n of_o degree_n among_o the_o bishop_n &_o spiritual_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n which_o last_o word_n spiritual_a governor_n must_v needs_o include_v all_o preacher_n that_o have_v spiritual_a charge_n as_o be_v before_o note_v 4._o and_o as_o among_o those_o degree_n ordain_v by_o they_o they_o reckon_v bishop_n aswell_o as_o archbishop_n etc._n etc._n so_o they_o ascribe_v unto_o the_o devise_n of_o the_o father_n the_o limitation_n of_o several_a diocese_n aswell_o as_o of_o province_n yea_o the_o limitation_n of_o the_o power_n of_o bishop_n aswell_o as_o of_o archbishop_n which_o can_v be_v think_v they_o will_v ever_o have_v do_v if_o they_o have_v hold_v they_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la 5._o and_o ail_fw-we this_o be_v after_o that_o christian_n be_v increase_v to_o a_o infinite_a multitude_n throughout_o the_o world_n and_o in_o a_o imitation_n of_o the_o example_n of_o like_a degree_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n not_o for_o that_o any_o such_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o new_a etc._n etc._n wherefore_o if_o the_o d._n have_v well_o peruse_v their_o word_n &_o with_o a_o indifferent_a eye_n look_v to_o the_o scope_n and_o drift_n of_o their_o plead_n he_o may_v have_v find_v that_o whatsoever_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o equality_n or_o superiority_n of_o bps._n among_o themselves_o affirm_v the_o one_o and_o deny_v the_o other_o to_o be_v institute_v by_o christ_n the_o same_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v not_o of_o such_o bishop_n as_o have_v that_o name_n proper_a to_o they_o after_o the_o father_n have_v establish_v sundry_a difference_n of_o degree_n but_o of_o all_o apostolic_a bishop_n or_o spiritual_a governor_n priest_n or_o preacher_n which_o have_v the_o spiritual_a charge_n of_o any_o people_n commit_v to_o they_o by_o the_o apostle_n which_o appear_v yet_o more_o clear_o as_o by_o that_o other_o book_n call_v reformatio_fw-la legum_fw-la ecclesiasticarun_v compile_v by_o they_o wherein_o it_o shall_v appear_v anon_o they_o make_v the_o bishop_n in_o quaestion_n to_o be_v of_o no_o other_o institution_n than_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o rank_n of_o archbishop_n archdeacon_n dean_n etc._n etc._n so_o also_o by_o that_o which_o bishop_n tonstall_n &_o stokesley_n two_o other_o of_o they_o and_o therefore_o fit_a to_o interpret_v their_o own_o meaning_n write_v in_o their_o letter_n to_o cardinal_n poole_n s._n jerom_n say_v they_o aswell_o in_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o epistle_n to_o titus_n as_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o euagrius_n show_v that_o those_o primacye_n long_o after_o christ_n ascension_n be_v make_v by_o the_o device_n of_o man_n where_o as_o before_o by_o the_o common_a agreement_n &_o consent_n of_o the_o clergy_n every_o of_o the_o church_n be_v govern_v yea_o the_o patriarchall_a church_n the_o word_n of_o s._n jerom_n be_v these_o sciant_fw-la ergo_fw-la episcopi_fw-la se_fw-la magis_fw-la ex_fw-la consuetudine_fw-la quam_fw-la dispensationis_fw-la dominicae_fw-la veritate_fw-la praesbyteris_fw-la esse_fw-la majores_fw-la and_o in_o the_o margin_n this_o note_n be_v set_v difference_n betwixt_o bishop_n &_o priest_n how_o it_o come_v in_o what_o can_v be_v more_o plain_a than_o this_o to_o show_v that_o those_o bishop_n do_v acknowledge_v as_o the_o ref_o say_v the_o disparity_n of_o minister_n &_o the_o primacy_n of_o bishop_n aswell_o as_o of_o archbishop_n etc._n etc._n be_v but_o a_o politik_a divise_n of_o the_o father_n and_o not_o any_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n jesus_n this_o shall_v suffice_v for_o that_o testimony_n before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o next_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o speak_v a_o word_n or_o two_o concern_v the_o d._n confession_n touch_v the_o parity_n of_o bishop_n among_o themselves_o but_o yet_o restreyn_v it_o to_o the_o power_n of_o order_n for_o fear_v of_o offend_v &_o cut_v off_o his_o archbishop_n head_n but_o so_o it_o fall_v out_o that_o when_o man_n be_v afraid_a to_o what_o be_v truth_n for_o offend_v one_o side_n they_o often_o speak_v to_o the_o offence_n of_o the_o other_o &_o that_o so_o far_o as_o we_o see_v the_o d._n here_o cut_v off_o the_o whole_a argument_n of_o the_o bishop_n against_o the_o papal_a authority_n while_o he_o deni_v what_o they_o affirm_v
viz._n that_o bishop_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la be_v equal_a among_o themselves_o in_o respect_n of_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n aswell_o as_o order_n but_o though_o he_o deal_v honest_o that_o himself_o and_o not_o the_o bishop_n of_o king_n henry_n day_n restreyn_v the_o equality_n of_o bishop_n among_o themselves_o to_o the_o power_n of_o order_n yet_o he_o cast_v a_o great_a blemish_n &_o disgrace_n upon_o those_o our_o forefather_n in_o signify_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n consent_v not_o with_o they_o but_o with_o he_o and_o against_o they_o in_o this_o point_n as_o for_o that_o clause_n he_o add_v as_o be_v also_o the_o apostle_n who_o successor_n the_o bishop_n be_v i_o know_v not_o to_o what_o purpose_v it_o serve_v save_v to_o discover_v his_o contradictinge_v either_o himself_o or_o the_o truth_n the_o d._n contradict_v himself_o or_o the_o truth_n truth_n himself_o if_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o equality_n of_o bishop_n among_o themselves_o be_v as_o large_a as_o that_o equality_n which_o be_v among_o the_o apostle_n for_o they_o he_o err_v in_o restreyn_v the_o equality_n of_o bishop_n unto_o power_n of_o order_n only_o the_o truth_n if_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o apostle_n have_v no_o other_o equality_n among_o themselves_o than_o he_o give_v to_o bishop_n for_o they_o be_v equal_a also_o in_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n aswell_o as_o in_o power_n of_o order_n as_o be_v right_o acknowledge_v by_o our_o bishop_n in_o their_o book_n and_o by_o the_o auncient_a bishop_n in_o their_o writing_n neither_o be_v it_o true_a as_o the_o doct._n will_v insinuate_v thaâ_n bishop_n only_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n successor_n the_o d._n untrue_o insinuate_v that_o bishop_n only_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n for_o to_o speak_v proper_o they_o have_v no_o successor_n and_o in_o a_o general_a sense_n all_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n that_o hold_v and_o teach_v their_o doctrine_n be_v their_o successor_n and_o herein_o we_o have_v against_o he_o among_o many_o other_o the_o consent_n of_o those_o reverend_a bishop_n who_o have_v say_v that_o christ_n give_v none_o of_o his_o apostle_n nor_o any_o of_o their_o successor_n any_o such_o authority_n as_o the_o pope_n claim_v over_o prince_n or_o in_o civil_a matter_n do_v make_v application_n thereof_o aswell_o to_o priest_n as_o to_o bishop_n but_o the_o d._n notwithstanding_o upon_o this_o that_o the_o bishop_n be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n go_v on_o and_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o may_v not_o infer_v because_o the_o apostle_n be_v equal_a among_o themselves_o that_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o superior_a to_o the_o 72_o disciple_n or_o because_o bishop_n be_v equal_a among_o themselves_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o superior_a to_o other_o minister_n whereunto_o i_o can_v say_v it_o be_v true_a if_o it_o be_v apparent_a first_o that_o bishop_n &_o other_o minister_n do_v differ_v by_o any_o special_a difference_n as_o the_o 72._o disciple_n do_v from_o the_o apostle_n but_o no_o such_o thing_n appear_v either_o in_o the_o scripture_n or_o in_o the_o bishop_n book_n from_o whence_o the_o doct._n reason_v but_o rather_o as_o have_v be_v show_v by_o the_o refuter_fw-la and_o be_v before_o maintain_v the_o clean_a contrary_n second_o that_o the_o apostle_n have_v any_o superiority_n over_o these_o disciple_n the_o which_o the_o doctor_n will_v not_o so_o easy_o prove_v as_o take_v for_o grant_v see_v 1._o christ_n live_v the_o apostle_n have_v no_o authority_n over_o any_o 2._o their_o apostolical_a authority_n be_v not_o as_o then_o when_o the_o 72._o be_v send_v forth_o commit_v unto_o they_o and_o 3._o it_o appear_v not_o that_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o 72._o be_v to_o be_v continue_v in_o the_o church_n after_o christ_n but_o only_o to_o remain_v for_o that_o present_a journey_n and_o afterward_o to_o be_v dispose_v of_o as_o christ_n please_v three_o it_o be_v also_o true_a that_o as_o the_o equality_n of_o the_o apostle_n among_o themselves_o and_o the_o suppose_a superiority_n they_o have_v over_o the_o 72_o take_v not_o away_o their_o subjection_n and_o inferiority_n to_o christ_n so_o neither_o do_v the_o equality_n of_o bishop_n among_o themselves_o nor_o their_o superioty_n over_o other_o minister_n take_v away_o their_o inferiority_n to_o the_o pope_n by_o any_o necessity_n of_o consequence_n wherefore_o i_o must_v for_o this_o testimony_n the_o refuse_fw-la right_o allege_v the_o testimony_n testimony_n conclude_v 1._o that_o the_o refuter_fw-la have_v right_o allege_v it_o and_o 2._o that_o the_o d._n have_v wrong_v not_o only_o his_o refuter_fw-la but_o we_o &_o they_o in_o labour_v and_o that_o with_o slander_n to_o wrest_v their_o testimony_n out_o of_o our_o hand_n the_o next_o testimony_n be_v take_v from_o the_o book_n call_v reform_v leg_n eccles_n 5._o sect_n 2._o ref._n pag._n 4._o d._n pag._n 5._o cap._n 10._o 11._o de_fw-la divinis_fw-la offic_n ijs_fw-la to_o prove_v that_o those_o which_o make_v the_o book_n deem_v that_o as_o the_o episcopal_a function_n be_v not_o jure_fw-la divino_fw-la so_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o minister_n and_o certeyn_a senior_n or_o elder_n in_o every_o parish_n be_v the_o ancient_a discipline_n &_o so_o consequent_o his_o doctrine_n in_o his_o sermon_n contrary_a to_o their_o judgement_n in_o answer_v whereunto_o 1._o he_o charge_v his_o refuter_fw-la to_o play_v the_o part_n of_o a_o egregious_a falsifyer_n and_o columniate_v the_o d._n columniate_v the_o allegation_n to_o be_v forge_v but_o by_o that_o time_n the_o matter_n be_v examine_v i_o persuade_v myself_o the_o reader_n will_v think_v it_o meet_v the_o doctor_n take_v home_o those_o speech_n to_o himself_o as_o his_o own_o proper_a the_o rather_o see_v the_o ref_n set_v not_o down_o the_o word_n of_o the_o book_n but_o only_o his_o own_o collection_n out_o of_o they_o 2._o he_o father_v that_o upon_o he_o which_o he_o neither_o say_v nor_o mean_v with_o what_o eye_n trow_o we_o look_v he_o upon_o the_o refuter_n word_n that_o he_o will_v make_v his_o reader_n believe_v that_o the_o refuter_fw-la affirm_v as_o he_o afterward_o intimate_v that_o the_o slaunder_v the_o doct._n slaunder_v compiler_n of_o the_o book_n mean_v to_o bring_v in_o lay-elders_a or_o to_o establish_v the_o pretend_a parish_n discipline_n or_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v the_o ancient_a discipline_n of_o the_o church_n let_v we_o now_o debate_v the_o matter_n as_o it_o deserve_v at_o large_a and_o first_o it_o be_v remember_v that_o the_o book_n be_v cite_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n in_o his_o sermon_n be_v against_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o immediate_a forefather_n we_o be_v to_o see_v what_o his_o doctrine_n be_v viz_o that_o as_o the_o episcopal_a function_n in_o quçstion_n be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la so_o all_o ecclesiastical_a power_n of_o jurisdiction_n be_v in_o the_o bishop_n hand_n only_o that_o the_o pastor_n of_o particular_a flock_n as_o they_o have_v their_o authority_n from_o the_o bishop_n so_o all_o the_o authority_n they_o have_v be_v in_o fore_n conscientia_fw-la not_o in_o foro_fw-la externo_fw-la either_o for_o direction_n or_o correction_n that_o belong_v whole_o to_o the_o bishop_n he_o be_v to_o reform_v abusâ_n exercise_n church_n censure_n against_o offender_n it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o any_o pastor_n of_o a_o particular_a congregation_n with_o any_o assistant_n of_o lay-elders_a or_o other_o associate_n to_o execute_v any_o censure_n &c_n &c_n whereof_o we_o may_v see_v more_o at_o large_a in_o the_o 4._o point_n of_o his_o sermon_n pag._n 45-52_a and_o however_o in_o his_o defence_n he_o do_v in_o part_n deny_v this_o to_o be_v his_o doctrine_n yet_o be_v it_o sufficient_o aver_v lib._n 2._o cap._n 4._o hereafter_o follow_v to_o be_v his_o doctrine_n now_o to_o prove_v that_o this_o his_o doctrine_n be_v against_o the_o judgement_n of_o those_o father_n be_v that_o book_n allege_v the_o doct._n be_v now_o to_o make_v good_a his_o charge_n if_o he_o can_v he_o say_v he_o will_v do_v it_o by_o transcribe_v the_o 10._o &_o 11._o chap._n cite_v the_o bare_a recital_n whereof_o be_v as_o he_o say_v a_o sufficient_a consutation_n of_o his_o forge_a allegation_n the_o word_n transcribe_v by_o he_o be_v evening_n prayer_n be_v end_v in_o city_n parish_n church_n whereunto_o after_o the_o sermon_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o concourse_n of_o all_o in_o their_o own_o church_n the_o principal_a minister_n who_o they_o call_v parochum_fw-la the_o parson_n or_o pastâr_n and_o the_o deacon_n if_o they_o be_v present_a etc._n etc._n and_o senior_n be_v to_o consult_v with_o the_o people_n how_o the_o money_n provide_v for_o godly_a use_n may_v be_v best_a bestow_v &_o to_o the_o same_o time_n let_v the_o discipline_n be_v reserve_v for_o they_o who_o have_v commit_v any_o public_a wickedness_n to_o the_o common_a offence_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o
make_v it_o to_o say_v that_o by_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n a_o bishop_n and_o a_o priest_n be_v all_o one_o or_o know_v he_o how_o far_o and_o unto_o who_o he_o reach_v the_o name_n of_o a_o heretic_n very_o chrisostom_n say_v sacerdotali_fw-la say_v in_o 1._o tim._n hom._n 11._o ad_fw-la evagrium_fw-la quaest_a vet_z et_fw-la novi_fw-la testan_n q._n 101_o de_fw-la dignitat_fw-la sacerdotali_fw-la between_o a_o bishop_n and_o a_o priest_n in_o a_o manner_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n s._n jerom_n say_v somewhat_o in_o rough_a sort_n i_o here_o say_v there_o be_v one_o become_v so_o peevishe_a that_o he_o set_v deacon_n before_o priest_n that_o be_v to_o say_v before_o bishop_n whereas_o the_o apostle_n plain_o teach_v we_o that_o priest_n and_o bishop_n be_v all_o one_o st._n austin_n say_v what_o be_v a_o bishop_n but_o the_o first_o priest_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o high_a priest_n so_o say_v saint_n ambrose_n there_o be_v but_o one_o consecration_n of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n for_o both_o of_o they_o be_v priest_n but_o the_o bishop_n be_v the_o first_o all_o these_o and_o other_o moâ_n holy_a father_n together_o with_o saint_n paul_n the_o apostle_n for_o thus_o say_v by_o mr._n hardinge_n advise_v must_n be_v hold_v for_o haeretike_n and_o in_o his_o reply_n to_o he_o article_n 4._o page_n 309._o have_v show_v what_o primacy_n or_o headship_n jerom_n give_v to_o peter_n viz_o that_o to_o avoid_v confusion_n which_o light_o happen_v in_o all_o company_n where_o no_o order_n be_v christ_n appoint_v peter_n for_o that_o he_o be_v the_o elder_a man_n to_o speak_v and_o deal_v for_o the_o rest_n as_o chief_a and_o head_n of_o all_o his_o brethren_n he_o add_v these_o word_n which_o order_n also_o be_v afterward_o universal_o take_v throughout_o the_o world_n that_o in_o every_o congregation_n of_o priest_n one_o shall_v have_v a_o special_a pre-eminence_n above_o other_o and_o be_v call_v episcopus_fw-la bishop_n this_o be_v think_v a_o good_a politic_a way_n to_o avoid_v conteution_n in_o the_o church_n by_o all_o which_o it_o appear_v that_o this_o worthy_a jewel_n be_v persuade_v 1._o that_o the_o pre-eminence_n of_o bishop_n above_o other_o minister_n be_v first_o bring_v in_o by_o humane_a policy_n and_o not_o by_o any_o divine_a ordinance_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 2._o that_o the_o pre-eminence_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o first_o original_a and_o establishment_n thereof_o be_v only_o a_o pre-eminence_n such_o as_o peter_n have_v above_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n which_o be_v at_o the_o most_o of_o order_n only_o and_o not_o of_o any_o superior_a command_a power_n &_o jurisdiction_n and_o 3._o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a ch_z other_o elder_n beside_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n have_v a_o hand_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n thus_o we_o see_v the_o judgement_n of_o these_o two_o bishop_n cite_v by_o 10._o sect._n 4._o ref._n pag._n 5._o d._n pag._n 9_o 10._o the_o refuter_fw-la now_o let_v the_o reader_n judge_n whether_o he_o have_v utter_v a_o notorious_a untruth_n in_o say_v the_o doctor_n sermon_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n profess_v by_o the_o bishop_n or_o rather_o whether_o the_o doctor_n have_v not_o malicious_o malicious_o the_o d._n slander_v malicious_o slander_v he_o in_o so_o charge_v he_o i_o say_v malicious_a and_o if_o his_o conscience_n be_v spur_v the_o quaestion_n from_o the_o abundance_n whereof_o his_o pen_n write_v it_o will_v subscribe_v to_o it_o for_o know_v he_o not_o all_o this_o to_o be_v true_a in_o the_o bishop_n book_n quote_v by_o the_o refuter_fw-la in_o his_o margin_n yea_o be_v not_o divers_a part_n of_o these_o testimony_n express_v in_o the_o refuter_n answer_v page_n 34._o and_o 124_o do_v he_o not_o read_v they_o there_o and_o have_v he_o not_o slip_v they_o over_o with_o such_o a_o slubber_v that_o if_o he_o be_v not_o far_o spend_v he_o can_v lay_v they_o and_o his_o answer_n to_o they_o together_o without_o the_o blushredd-colour_n well_o but_o the_o doctor_n be_v none_o of_o they_o that_o will_v be_v mad_a without_o reason_n he_o therefore_o give_v we_o a_o reason_n why_o he_o do_v not_o credit_n his_o refuter_fw-la for_o say_v he_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n appear_v best_a by_o the_o article_n and_o confession_n of_o our_o church_n which_o reason_n be_v without_o reason_n and_o argue_v the_o man_n not_o so_o well_o advise_v as_o he_o may_v be_v when_o he_o appeal_v to_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o church_n collect_v out_o of_o the_o apology_n thereof_o write_v as_o himself_o say_v by_o bishop_n jewel_n from_o the_o apology_n itself_o and_o author_n own_o exposition_n and_o defence_n of_o it_o be_v it_o likely_a think_v you_o that_o other_o man_n shall_v understand_v he_o better_o than_o himself_o do_v either_o in_o the_o apology_n or_o defence_n of_o it_o especial_o be_v authorize_v to_o write_v it_o by_o our_o church_n and_o it_o allow_v yea_o command_v to_o be_v in_o all_o our_o church_n but_o let_v we_o examine_v his_o allegation_n apart_o the_o first_o be_v the_o book_n of_o article_n and_o what_o do_v that_o the_o 36._o article_n thereof_o approve_v say_v he_o the_o book_n of_o consecrate_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n and_o what_o then_o that_o book_n say_v he_o in_o the_o preface_n thereof_o say_v that_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n there_o have_v be_v those_o order_n of_o minister_n bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n in_o christ_n church_n and_o that_o god_n by_o his_o spirit_n appoint_v they_o in_o his_o church_n be_v not_o this_o a_o sweet_a proof_n mark_v it_o well_o the_o article_n approve_v the_o book_n and_o the_o preface_n of_o that_o book_n say_v that_o those_o three_o order_n have_v be_v in_o the_o church_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o the_o book_n of_o article_n and_o consequent_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n approve_v the_o function_n of_o bishop_n and_o their_o superiority_n above_o priest_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a ordinance_n as_o if_o 1._o what_o soever_o be_v say_v in_o the_o preface_n before_o the_o book_n which_o in_o all_o likelihood_n be_v do_v by_o one_o or_o two_o only_a and_o not_o by_o so_o general_a a_o consent_n as_o the_o book_n itself_o must_v needs_o be_v allow_v for_o the_o currant_n doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o that_o age_n because_o the_o 36._o article_n in_o our_o book_n of_o article_n do_v for_o some_o purpose_n approve_v the_o book_n of_o consecrate_v bishop_n etc._n etc._n as_o contain_v in_o it_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o such_o consecration_n but_o 2._o do_v that_o preface_n say_v that_o those_o 3._o order_n be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n no_o but_o from_o the_o apostle_n time_n exclusive_o which_o word_n doâ_n not_o prove_v they_o be_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n but_o the_o contrary_a as_o the_o refuter_fw-la have_v show_v out_o of_o chamier_n de_fw-fr pontif_n oecum_fw-la in_o his_o answer_n page_n 87._o in_o the_o like_a phrase_n of_o jerom_n to_o evagrius_n say_v that_o from_o mark_v the_o evangelist_n unto_o heraclas_n etc._n etc._n one_o of_o the_o presbyter_n be_v choose_v from_o among_o the_o rest_n &_o set_v over_o the_o rest_n etc._n etc._n but_o 3._o it_o seem_v they_o mean_v otherwise_o by_o the_o last_o clause_n which_o the_o d._n cit_v that_o god_n by_o his_o spirit_n appoint_v they_o in_o his_o church_n but_o the_o reader_n must_v know_v that_o that_o sentence_n be_v none_o of_o they_o nor_o to_o be_v find_v in_o that_o preface_n it_o have_v please_v the_o d._n ex_fw-la abundanti_fw-la to_o add_v that_o clause_n of_o his_o own_o head_n and_o clean_o contrary_a to_o their_o meaning_n that_o make_v that_o book_n at_o least_o for_o as_o we_o have_v hear_v cap._n 3_o before_o go_v they_o hold_v the_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n it_o the_o d._n add_v one_o sentence_n to_o his_o testimony_n and_o detract_v another_o from_o it_o to_o be_v a_o politic_a devise_n of_o man_n and_o not_o the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n let_v we_o go_v forward_o with_o the_o doctor_n he_o add_v that_o the_o bishop_n be_v require_v to_o correct_v and_o punish_v according_a to_o such_o authority_n as_o he_o have_v by_o god_n word_n here_o 1._o i_o charge_v the_o d_o as_o before_o with_o the_o add_v of_o one_o sentence_n so_o here_o with_o the_o detract_n of_o another_o while_o he_o deceitful_o conceal_v part_n of_o the_o word_n for_o the_o book_n require_v the_o bishop_n to_o correct_v and_o punish_v etc._n etc._n according_a to_o such_o authority_n as_o he_o have_v by_o god_n word_n and_o the_o ordinance_n of_o this_o realm_n which_o late_a clause_n of_o the_o law_n of_o this_o realm_n they_o will_v never_o have_v add_v have_v they_o think_v that_o the_o power_n
which_o our_o bishop_n exercise_n be_v whole_o by_o god_n word_n but_o 2._o though_o those_o word_n detract_v by_o the_o doctor_n have_v not_o be_v add_v by_o they_o if_o he_o think_v it_o will_v prove_v that_o the_o function_n now_o exercise_v by_o bishop_n be_v warrant_v to_o they_o by_o god_n word_n he_o forget_v his_o own_o distinction_n between_o potest_fw-la as_o &_o modus_fw-la potestatis_fw-la together_o with_o the_o difference_n which_o he_o put_v between_o function_n and_o authority_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 100_o 102._o &_o 147._o neither_o 3._o be_v that_o authority_n which_o the_o book_n require_v bishop_n to_o exercise_v such_o a_o sole_a power_n of_o correction_n as_o the_o doctor_n give_v unto_o they_o for_o the_o same_o book_n require_v also_o of_o every_o minister_n aswell_o as_o of_o the_o bishop_n at_o his_o ordination_n that_o he_o preach_v the_o word_n and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n &_o he_o the_o d._n own_o testimony_n against_o he_o discipline_n so_o give_v every_o minister_n a_o stroke_n in_o the_o outward_a policy_n &_o government_n of_o the_o church_n aswell_o as_o the_o bishop_n which_o the_o doct._n take_v quite_o from_o he_o but_o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n the_o book_n of_o article_n do_v in_o deed_n show_v the_o judgement_n of_o our_o church_n in_o some_o matter_n of_o policy_n and_o church_n government_n devise_v by_o man_n aswell_o as_o in_o more_o weighty_a point_n of_o faith_n set_v down_o in_o god_n word_n wherefore_o the_o doctrine_n of_o our_o church_n concern_v the_o late_a be_v not_o to_o be_v seek_v for_o in_o the_o book_n of_o consecration_n or_o the_o 36._o article_n that_o establish_v it_o much_o less_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o that_o book_n but_o rather_o in_o those_o article_n which_o concern_v faith_n and_o sacrament_n for_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o our_o church_n be_v assemble_v in_o parliament_n evident_o perceive_v that_o there_o be_v some_o clause_n sentence_n and_o article_n in_o that_o book_n and_o the_o preface_n thereof_o not_o warrantable_a by_o the_o word_n do_v therefore_o approve_v of_o it_o no_o further_o than_o it_o concern_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n and_o provide_v also_o that_o no_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n shall_v be_v tie_v by_o his_o subscription_n further_o to_o approve_v it_o as_o well_o appear_v by_o the_o statute_n 13._o elizab_n cap._n 12._o and_o here_o i_o wish_v the_o reader_n 1._o to_o take_v notice_n that_o in_o all_o that_o book_n there_o be_v no_o word_n of_o archbishop_n archdeacon_n dean_n rural_a dean_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o that_o row_n so_o that_o they_o will_v not_o be_v find_v be_v like_o in_o the_o word_n nor_o have_v god_n by_o his_o spirit_n appoint_v they_o in_o his_o church_n 2._o to_o observe_v how_o the_o doct._n that_o so_o bold_o and_o confident_o that_o i_o say_v no_o more_o reject_v so_o many_o synod_n church_n and_o learned_a man_n allege_v by_o the_o refut_o and_o acknowledge_v by_o himself_o to_o be_v orthodoxal_a divine_n be_v not_o so_o well_o see_v in_o his_o allegation_n here_o as_o he_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v sure_o he_o may_v very_o well_o conceive_v that_o we_o may_v take_v exception_n not_o only_o to_o his_o book_n of_o order_v bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n but_o to_o the_o article_n that_o establish_v it_o both_o be_v make_v by_o the_o bishop_n themselves_o judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n and_o seek_v their_o own_o pre-eminence_n especial_o when_o they_o be_v both_o so_o far_o except_v against_o by_o that_o whole_a assembly_n of_o parliament_n as_o not_o to_o bind_v any_o by_o subscription_n to_o approve_v they_o so_o much_o as_o consonant_a to_o the_o word_n thus_o much_o concern_v the_o book_n of_o article_n and_o the_o d._n deal_v with_o we_o therein_o come_v we_o now_o to_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o english_a ââ_o sect._n ââ_o church_n collect_v as_o the_o d_o say_v out_o of_o the_o apology_n the_o word_n as_o he_o lay_v they_o down_o be_v these_o we_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v divers_a degree_n of_o minister_n in_o the_o church_n whereof_o some_o be_v deacon_n some_o priest_n some_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n but_o he_o shall_v have_v read_v out_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o sentence_n and_o not_o break_v off_o with_o a_o etc._n etc._n so_o keep_v many_o of_o his_o reader_n from_o the_o sight_n of_o they_o if_o he_o dare_v for_o overthrowinge_v his_o own_o cause_n for_o the_o very_a next_o word_n insinuate_v that_o these_o diverse_a degree_n he_o if_o the_o d._n have_v read_v his_o own_o testimony_n to_o the_o end_n it_o will_v have_v be_v against_o he_o be_v of_o order_n not_o of_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n while_o they_o make_v the_o office_n of_o those_o divers_a degree_n to_o be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o say_n to_o who_o be_v commit_v the_o office_n to_o instruct_v the_o people_n and_o the_o whole_a charge_n and_o set_v forth_o of_o religion_n it_o seem_v the_o d._n be_v somewhat_o shortwinded_a when_o he_o read_v that_o sentence_n and_o i_o challenge_v he_o to_o bring_v one_o word_n out_o of_o all_o that_o confession_n that_o give_v more_o authority_n to_o bishop_n then_o to_o other_o minister_n that_o be_v call_v priest_n do_v not_o the_o 7._o article_n of_o that_o confession_n profess_v that_o christ_n have_v give_v to_o his_o minister_n one_o aswell_o as_o another_o power_n to_o bind_v to_o loose_v to_o open_v to_o shut_v do_v it_o not_o make_v the_o authority_n of_o bind_v and_o lose_v to_o be_v in_o thaâ_n censure_v of_o excommunication_n and_o absolve_v from_o it_o aswell_o as_o in_o preach_v mercy_n or_o judgement_n do_v it_o not_o make_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o key_n whereby_o the_o minister_n must_v open_v or_o shut_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heâveâ_n and_o do_v it_o not_o affirm_v that_o the_o disciple_n of_o christ_n aswell_o as_o the_o apostle_n receive_v the_o authority_n of_o open_v and_o shut_v by_o it_o and_o that_o the_o priest_n be_v a_o judge_n in_o this_o case_n though_o he_o have_v no_o manner_n of_o right_a to_o challenge_v a_o authority_n or_o power_n that_o be_v as_o the_o observation_n upon_o it_o understand_v it_o civil_a or_o to_o make_v law_n to_o man_n conscience_n to_o be_v short_a do_v it_o not_o affirm_v that_o see_v one_o manner_n of_o word_n be_v give_v to_o all_o and_o one_o only_a key_n belong_v to_o all_o that_o therefore_o there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a power_n of_o all_o minister_n as_o concern_v open_v and_o shut_v if_o i_o belie_v not_o the_o confession_n but_o that_o these_o be_v the_o very_a word_n thereof_o let_v he_o that_o read_v confider_v whether_o the_o confession_n produce_v by_o the_o doctor_n as_o a_o advocate_n in_o his_o behalf_n to_o prove_v the_o refuter_n four_o untruth_n have_v not_o as_o a_o judge_n give_v sentence_n against_o his_o own_o client_n worthy_o therefore_o have_v he_o here_o cite_v this_o confession_n and_o of_o no_o less_o worth_n be_v his_o own_o observation_n upon_o it_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v say_v he_o that_o our_o church_n acknowledge_v nothing_o as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o conââyned_v in_o god_n word_n or_o ground_v thereon_o and_o i_o will_v note_v it_o with_o he_o and_o do_v tell_v he_o that_o he_o note_v well_o for_o we_o and_o against_o himself_o the_o doct._n note_n be_v for_o we_o and_o against_o himself_o himself_o for_o if_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n by_o such_o bishop_n as_o he_o speak_v of_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n why_o put_v he_o a_o difference_n between_o matter_n of_o discipline_n and_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o refer_v the_o question_n of_o the_o function_n and_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n to_o the_o former_a lib._n 3._o page_n 38_o and_o how_o be_v their_o government_n mutable_a and_o not_o perpetual_o necessary_a as_o in_o his_o defence_n he_o often_o affirm_v in_o deed_n he_o once_o say_v that_o the_o episcopal_a function_n and_o authority_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v the_o same_o with_o we_o as_o be_v assign_v to_o certain_a church_n consist_v in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n as_o be_v ordinary_a and_o perpetual_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o well_o be_v but_o also_o for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n this_o be_v the_o doctor_n faith_n when_o he_o preach_v and_o print_v his_o sermon_n page_n 79._o but_o it_o seem_v his_o refuter_fw-la have_v occasion_v his_o departure_n from_o it_o but_o let_v we_o that_o pass_v and_o keep_v we_o he_o to_o his_o note_n here_o thus_o i_o reason_n it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o our_o church_n acknowledge_v nothing_o for_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o contain_v in_o
mere_a cavil_n join_v with_o a_o evident_a untruth_n together_o the_o d._n join_v a_o cavil_n and_o a_o untruth_n together_o to_o say_v as_o the_o d._n do_v that_o the_o proposition_n set_v down_o by_o the_o refuter_fw-la be_v not_o he_o but_o stretch_v beyond_o not_o only_o his_o meaning_n but_o also_o his_o word_n 4._o but_o it_o be_v the_o d._n cunning_a to_o take_v advantage_n of_o the_o word_n seeminge_v here_o use_v but_o elsewhere_o omit_v so_o to_o persuade_v if_o he_o can_v that_o his_o resuter_n have_v no_o colour_n from_o his_o word_n to_o coclude_v that_o he_o do_v set_v up_o but_o only_o that_o he_o do_v seem_v to_o set_v up_o absolute_a poplinge_n for_o which_o cause_n also_o in_o meet_v with_o the_o place_n where_o the_o refuter_fw-la renew_v this_o objection_n which_o yet_o be_v no_o often_o then_o his_o own_o word_n give_v occasion_n by_o his_o renewinge_v of_o his_o calumniation_n against_o the_o favourite_n of_o the_o government_n by_o presbyter_n he_o send_v back_o his_o reader_n to_o this_o place_n say_v that_o thâse_a objection_n though_o repeat_v in_o other_o word_n answer_v to_o his_o own_o term_n be_v answer_v before_o and_o that_o to_o their_o shame_n see_v lib._n 1._o pa._n 194._o &_o lib._n 3._o pag._n 142._o but_o will_v he_o will_z he_o we_o have_v gain_v the_o propositio_fw-la so_o that_o if_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o assumptio_fw-la be_v not_o the_o better_a the_o shame_n will_v light_v upon_o his_o own_o pate_n to_o come_v therefore_o to_o the_o assumption_n first_o let_v it_o be_v remember_v 8._o sect._n 8._o that_o the_o refuter_fw-la propound_v it_o not_o as_o his_o own_o assertion_n which_o he_o mean_v to_o prove_v by_o the_o constitution_n of_o our_o church_n or_o the_o practice_n of_o our_o bishop_n but_o as_o a_o point_n which_o the_o d._n undertake_v to_o prove_v in_o his_o sermon_n 2._o he_o be_v likewise_o to_o be_v so_o understand_v as_o oft_o as_o he_o object_v against_o our_o bishop_n that_o have_v sole_a and_o supreme_a authority_n they_o rule_v as_o pope_n or_o popelinge_v wherefore_o the_o assumption_n which_o the_o d._n reject_v as_o false_a and_o foolish_a or_o frivolous_a be_v this_o in_o effect_n that_o all_o diocesan_n bishop_n have_v or_o aught_o to_o have_v in_o the_o d._n opinion_n not_o only_o supreme_a but_o also_o sâle-authority_n in_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a within_o their_o diocese_n or_o thus_o the_o d._n give_v and_o allow_v to_o diocesan_n bishop_n such_o supreme_a and_o sole_a authority_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o to_o make_v way_n for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o assumption_n the_o refuter_fw-la first_fw-mi lay_v down_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n into_o which_o the_o doctor_n be_v now_o enter_v viz._n whither_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v govern_v by_o pastor_n and_o elder_n or_o by_o diocesan_n bishop_n and_o then_o add_v that_o where_o they_o say_v by_o pastor_n and_o elder_n adjoin_v the_o elder_n to_o the_o pastor_n and_o make_v they_o both_o subuct_n to_o the_o congregation_n so_o far_o off_o be_v they_o from_o give_v sole_a and_o supreme_a authority_n to_o the_o pastor_n alone_o etc._n etc._n mr_n doct._n take_v all_o from_o they_o all_o and_o put_v the_o reâââ_n into_o the_o band_n of_o his_o diocesan_n alone_o etc._n etc._n from_o which_o word_n to_o conclude_v the_o former_a assumption_n and_o in_o the_o contrive_n of_o the_o argument_n to_o keep_v as_o near_o as_o may_v be_v to_o the_o tenor_n of_o the_o syllogism_n propose_v by_o the_o doctor_n to_o himself_o to_o confute_v thus_o i_o argue_v whosoever_o give_v to_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n alone_o that_o power_n which_o be_v take_v from_o the_o several_a pastor_n with_o their_o elder_n and_o parish_n he_o give_v to_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n supreme_a and_o sole_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a but_o the_o doctor_n give_v to_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n alone_o that_o power_n which_o be_v take_v from_o their_o several_a pastor_n with_o their_o elder_n and_o parish_n therefore_o the_o doctor_n give_v to_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n both_o supreme_a and_o sole_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a i_o take_v the_o proposition_n which_o the_o doct._n himself_o set_v down_o sect_n 11._o pag._n 43._o and_o adjoyne_v such_o a_o assumption_n as_o best_o fit_v with_o it_o and_o i_o nothing_o doubt_v but_o the_o refuter_fw-la will_n easy_o be_v discharge_v from_o all_o the_o untruth_n the_o doctor_n charge_v upon_o he_o and_o it_o be_v make_v to_o appear_v that_o the_o doct._n himself_o be_v the_o man_n that_o climb_v that_o ladder_n of_o untruth_n to_o put_v his_o untruth_n the_o d._n not_o the_o ref._n climb_v the_o ladder_n of_o untruth_n bishop_n out_o of_o that_o seat_n of_o papacy_n wherein_o by_o his_o own_o rule_n they_o be_v quiet_o seat_v and_o first_o i_o will_v confirm_v the_o part_n of_o this_o argument_n &_o then_o blow_v away_o the_o smoke_n of_o those_o untruth_n which_o rise_v from_o out_o of_o the_o doctor_n as_o spark_n fly_v upward_o the_o proposition_n i_o thus_o prove_v whosoever_o give_v unto_o one_o diocesan_n bishop_n alone_o for_o his_o diocese_n such_o a_o power_n of_o government_n as_o will_v be_v find_v both_o supreme_a and_o sole_a if_o it_o be_v invest_v whole_o in_o the_o person_n of_o any_o one_o pastor_n for_o the_o government_n of_o one_o parish_n he_o give_v to_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n alone_o for_o his_o diocese_n both_o supreme_a and_o sole_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a but_o that_o power_n of_o government_n which_o the_o d._n take_v from_o the_o several_a pastor_n with_o their_o elder_n and_o parish_n be_v such_o a_o power_n as_o will_v be_v find_v to_o be_v both_o supreme_a and_o sole_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecelâsticall_a if_o it_o be_v whole_o invest_v into_o the_o person_n of_o any_o one_o pastor_n for_o the_o government_n of_o one_o parish_n therefore_o whosoever_o give_v unto_o one_o diocesan_n bishop_n alone_o for_o his_o diocese_n that_o power_n of_o government_n which_o the_o d._n take_v from_o the_o several_a pastor_n with_o their_o elder_n and_o parish_n he_o give_v unto_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n alone_o for_o his_o diocese_n both_o supreme_a and_o sole_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a of_o this_o prosyllogisme_n the_o proposition_n be_v clear_a enough_o of_o itself_o and_o the_o assumption_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o d._n word_n both_o in_o his_o sermon_n and_o this_o defence_n of_o it_o when_o he_o say_v again_o and_o again_o that_o the_o authority_n which_o he_o deni_v unto_o parish_n with_o their_o pastor_n and_o elder_n in_o this_o controversy_n be_v a_o immediate_a and_o independent_a or_o supreme_a authority_n sufficient_a for_o ecclesiastical_a government_n and_o that_o the_o pastor_n shall_v have_v pope-like_a authority_n viz._n supreme_a and_o sole_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a if_o there_o be_v not_o a_o consistory_n of_o elder_n adjoin_v to_o he_o wherefore_o if_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o the_o d._n give_v to_o diocesa_fw-mi bishop_n that_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n which_o he_o deni_v unto_o pastor_n with_o their_o parish_n and_o elder_n it_o will_v inevitable_o follow_v that_o he_o allow_v unto_o every_o diocesan_n bishop_n supreme_a and_o sole_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a to_o proceed_v therefore_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o point_n which_o be_v the_o assumption_n of_o the_o first_o prosyllogisme_n thus_o i_o argue_v in_o debate_v this_o question_n whither_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v govern_v several_o by_o pastor_n and_o elder_n in_o every_o parish_n or_o by_o bishop_n set_v over_o the_o pastor_n and_o people_n in_o a_o whole_a diocese_n whosoever_o impugn_v the_o former_a and_o maintain_v the_o late_a he_o give_v unto_o every_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n that_o power_n of_o government_n which_o he_o denâeth_v to_o the_o several_a pastor_n with_o their_o elder_n and_o parish_n but_o in_o debate_v the_o question_n before_o mention_v the_o d._n impugn_v the_o former_a branch_n of_o the_o question_n and_o maintain_v the_o late_a therefore_o he_o give_v to_o every_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n that_o power_n of_o government_n which_o he_o deny_v unto_o the_o several_a pastor_n with_o their_o elder_n and_o parish_n here_o the_o assumption_n be_v in_o itself_o evident_a if_o the_o question_n debate_v be_v such_o as_o be_v before_o note_v which_o none_o of_o his_o friend_n need_v to_o doubt_v of_o since_o the_o d._n himself_o except_v not_o against_o it_o but_o intreat_v the_o reader_n to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n for_o future_a use_n pag._n 41._o and_o when_o he_o repeat_v it_o cap._n 3._o pag._n 61._o he_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v right_o set_v down_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o part_n of_o the_o disfunction_n whence_o it_o follow_v also_o that_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o prosyllogisme_n stand_v firm_a for_o
alone_o in_o his_o diocese_n and_o so_o be_v guiltless_a of_o the_o untruth_n he_o charge_v on_o the_o refuter_fw-la he_o must_v both_o affirm_v and_o prove_v that_o the_o archdeacon_n and_n dean_n rural_a and_o cathedral_n together_o with_o the_o chauncelor_n and_o official_o which_o now_o rule_v under_o the_o bishop_n and_o the_o archbishop_n with_o his_o court_n which_o be_v above_o he_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n or_o at_o least_o be_v in_o use_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o derive_v to_o succeed_a age_n and_o yet_o if_o he_o can_v and_o shall_v performo_fw-la this_o hereafter_o it_o shall_v nothing_o weaken_v the_o refuter_n assertion_n who_o examine_v the_o tenor_n of_o his_o sermon_n and_o find_v therein_o no_o intimation_n either_o of_o any_o assistant_n to_o restrain_v his_o diocesan_n bishop_n or_o any_o superior_a court_n to_o rule_v over_o he_o do_v therefore_o true_o bosom_n sect._n 10._o add_v section_n 11._o page_n 43._o two_o other_o untruth_n charge_v on_o the_o ref._n by_o the_o d._n return_v back_o into_o his_o own_o bosom_n affirm_v that_o the_o doctor_n put_v the_o reins_n of_o the_o government_n controvert_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o his_o diocesan_n alone_o as_o for_o those_o two_o untruth_n which_o he_o seek_v and_o profess_v to_o find_v in_o the_o proposition_n they_o do_v even_o as_o the_o former_a two_o return_v home_n into_o his_o own_o bosom_n for_o since_o he_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o power_n which_o he_o take_v from_o the_o several_a pastor_n with_o their_o elder_n and_o parish_n be_v in_o his_o opinion_n a_o supreme_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a and_o such_o as_o will_v be_v both_o supreme_a and_o sole_a in_o the_o pastor_n yea_o more_o than_o popelike_a if_o they_o have_v not_o a_o consistory_n of_o elder_n join_v to_o he_o it_o be_v no_o untruth_n to_o affirm_v but_o a_o untruth_n to_o deny_v that_o he_o give_v both_o sole_a and_o supreme_a authority_n to_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n whosoever_o he_o be_v that_o give_v to_o he_o alone_o that_o power_n of_o government_n which_o the_o doctor_n take_v from_o every_o several_a pastor_n with_o the_o elder_n and_o people_n of_o every_o parish_n for_o whereas_o he_o object_v that_o because_o he_o acknowledge_v a_o superior_a authority_n both_o in_o the_o archbishop_n and_o his_o court_n and_o in_o the_o provincial_a synod_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v apparent_a that_o although_o he_o do_v take_v all_o authority_n from_o parish_n bishop_n and_o their_o elder_n yet_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o he_o give_v the_o whole_a authority_n ecclesiastical_a to_o the_o diocesan_n alone_o it_o be_v but_o a_o idle_a repetition_n of_o what_o he_o before_o object_v &_o be_v before_o answer_v and_o here_o altogether_o impertinent_a because_o to_o wââken_v the_o refuter_n proposition_n he_o must_v show_v that_o he_o give_v not_o supreme_a and_o sole_a authority_n to_o the_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n although_o he_o give_v to_o he_o alone_o all_o the_o power_n that_o he_o take_v from_o the_o several_a pastor_n with_o their_o elder_n and_o parish_n but_o whereas_o he_o fall_v back_o to_o the_o assumption_n again_o &_o add_v touch_v his_o refuters_n speech_n in_o say_v that_o he_o ascribe_v supreme_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a to_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n that_o it_o be_v the_o supreme_a and_o loud_a lie_n and_o make_v the_o assumption_n of_o his_o cheefâsyllogisme_n evident_o false_a it_o be_v a_o supreme_a and_o loud_a lie_n in_o the_o doctor_n if_o lie_n the_o d._n make_v a_o loud_a lie_n i_o may_v return_v he_o his_o own_o word_n 1._o to_o reckon_v this_o for_o one_o untruth_n imply_v in_o the_o proposition_n when_o himself_o acknowledge_v it_o to_o be_v the_o assumption_n of_o his_o chief_a syllogism_n 2._o to_o deny_v it_o for_o what_o can_v be_v speak_v with_o a_o supreme_a &_o loud_a cry_n by_o he_o then_o that_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n have_v supreme_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a and_o that_o not_o in_o this_o defence_n only_o but_o in_o the_o 4._o point_n of_o those_o 5._o in_o his_o sermon_n where_o he_o offer_v to_o prove_v it_o by_o divers_a testimony_n to_o what_o end_n else_o cit_v he_o pag._n 30._o ignatius_n ad_fw-la smyrn_n and_o pag._n 31._o 34._o 36._o 46._o ignatius_n ad_fw-la trallens_n show_v that_o all_o must_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n who_o hold_v and_o menage_v the_o whole_a power_n &_o authority_n over_o all_o yea_o such_o a_o power_n as_o admit_v no_o partner_n much_o less_o a_o superior_a yea_o what_o else_o mean_v his_o conclusion_n pag._n 52._o where_o he_o say_v thus_o you_o have_v hear_v that_o the_o angel_n or_o bishop_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v for_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o calling_n such_o as_o we_o be_v have_v a_o peerless_a power_n both_o of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n if_o this_o be_v not_o to_o give_v supreme_a authority_n to_o the_o diocesan_n bishop_n let_v the_o reader_n especial_o when_o he_o have_v read_v the_o 7._o section_n of_o the_o next_o chapter_n judge_n as_o yet_o therefore_o neither_o the_o low_a nor_o the_o loud_a lie_n which_o the_o doctor_n charge_v upon_o his_o refuter_fw-la do_v belong_v to_o he_o they_o must_v go_v home_o and_o rest_n with_o their_o own_o father_n for_o aught_o be_v yet_o do_v as_o for_o all_o that_o which_o follow_v pag._n 44._o &_o 45._o either_o to_o def._n sect._n 11._o add_v pag._n 44._o &_o 45._o &_o sect_n 12._o 46._o 47._o def._n free_a himself_o from_o give_v popelike_a authority_n to_o bishop_n or_o to_o prove_v his_o accusation_n against_o the_o presbyterian_o that_o they_o make_v the_o pastor_n of_o every_o parish_n a_o petty_a pope_n well_o may_v it_o argue_v his_o wp_n good_a affection_n to_o the_o one_o and_o evil_a will_n which_o never_o say_v well_o to_o the_o other_o but_o it_o can_v neither_o clear_v he_o nor_o condemn_v they_o in_o his_o conscience_n who_o indifferent_o examine_v the_o cause_n on_o both_o side_n for_o neither_o be_v the_o doctor_n cause_n relieve_v by_o that_o subjection_n which_o he_o affirm_v and_o the_o refuter_fw-la acknowledge_v of_o our_o diocesan_n bishop_n to_o their_o archbishop_n &c_n &c_n neither_o be_v their_o cause_n make_v the_o worse_a by_o the_o height_n or_o impudency_n of_o that_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n which_o they_o give_v to_o the_o pastor_n or_o people_n of_o every_o parish_n for_o the_o question_n be_v not_o as_o the_o doctor_n shift_v question_n the_o doct._n shift_v the_o question_n it_o whether_o by_o our_o church_n constitution_n dioccsan_n bishop_n do_v lie_v subject_a to_o any_o high_a authority_n or_o whether_o man_n may_v appeal_v from_o they_o etc._n etc._n but_o whether_o the_o doctor_n do_v not_o endeavour_n in_o his_o sermon_n to_o convey_v unto_o every_o bishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n as_o his_o right_n by_o divine_a institution_n a_o authority_n and_o power_n of_o government_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a no_o less_o sole_a and_o supreme_a than_o the_o power_n which_o every_o pastor_n shall_v have_v in_o his_o parish_n by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o late_a disciplinarian_n as_o he_o call_v they_o if_o he_o have_v no_o consistory_n of_o elder_n to_o assist_v and_o restrain_v he_o and_o towch_v the_o parishbishop_n the_o question_n be_v this_o whether_o he_o shall_v be_v or_o at_o least_o seem_v to_o be_v a_o absolute_a popeling_o as_o have_v sole_a and_o supreme_a authority_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a if_o he_o have_v not_o a_o consistory_n of_o elder_n adjoin_v unto_o he_o if_o therefore_o the_o doctor_n will_v leave_v his_o shift_a and_o slander_v and_o syllogistical_o conclude_v either_o from_o his_o own_o sermon_n the_o negative_a in_o the_o former_a question_n or_o from_o their_o writing_n who_o he_o impugn_v the_o assirmative_a in_o the_o late_a he_o shall_v i_o doubt_v not_o have_v good_a and_o honest_a audience_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n see_v he_o have_v not_o as_o yet_o affirm_v much_o less_o prove_v that_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v by_o divine_a or_o apostolical_a institution_n subject_n to_o the_o jurisdiction_n either_o of_o the_o archbishop_n or_o of_o the_o provincial_a synod_n it_o may_v suffice_v to_o close_v up_o the_o former_a questio_fw-la with_o his_o own_o word_n p._n 43._o what_o have_v he_o gain_v by_o all_o his_o own_o triumph_v outcry_n but_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o own_o manifest_a untruth_n and_o for_o the_o late_a question_n since_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o their_o protestatio_fw-la touch_v the_o k._n supremacy_n that_o they_o do_v subject_n their_o pastor_n aswell_o as_o the_o mean_a of_o the_o people_n together_o with_o the_o whole_a congregatio_fw-la to_o the_o king_n authority_n &_o to_o all_o his_o majesty_n civil_a officer_n &_o ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o see_v also_o it_o appear_v not_o only_o by_o the_o same_o tract_n art_n 26._o but_o also_o by_o
notwithstanding_o for_o the_o clearinge_n of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n two_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v consider_v to_o wit_n first_o what_o he_o include_v in_o or_o exclude_v from_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o call_n second_o in_o what_o sense_n their_o function_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n the_o substance_n of_o their_o call_n the_o doctor_n explain_v serm_n 6._o sect._n 6._o page_n 52._o 53._o where_o haâing_v say_v that_o the_o angel_n or_o bishop_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v for_o the_o substance_n of_o their_o call_n such_o as_o we_o be_v he_o add_v that_o be_v to_o say_v diocâsan_n and_o provincial_n bishop_n be_v superior_a in_o degree_n to_o other_o minister_n and_o have_v a_o singularity_n of_o prehemmence_a for_o term_v of_o life_n and_o a_o peerless_a power_n both_o of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n nevertheless_o the_o reader_n must_v not_o imagine_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o provincial_n or_o metropolitan_a bishop_n when_o he_o affirm_v the_o episcopal_a function_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n âor_a in_o his_o defence_n he_o usual_o insert_v the_o word_n diocesan_n as_o lib._n 1._o pag._n 58._o and_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 139._o to_o teach_v we_o that_o the_o bishop_n who_o function_n he_o mainteyn_v to_o be_v of_o apostolical_a institution_n be_v no_o other_o than_o diocesan_n bishop_n as_o for_o metropolitan_o though_o he_o think_v lib._n 2._o cap._n 6._o pag._n 114._o that_o their_o superiority_n be_v intend_v by_o the_o apostle_n when_o they_o appoint_v bishop_n over_z mother_z city_n yet_o as_o well_o as_o he_o love_v they_o he_o dare_v not_o affirm_v that_o any_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n to_o the_o office_n or_o prâh_a minence_n of_o metropolitan_a bishop_n for_o every_o metropolitan_a in_o his_o opinion_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 1._o pag._n 20._o 21._o be_v bishop_n the_o function_n of_o archbps._n be_v less_o behold_v to_o the_o d._n theâ_n the_o function_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n original_o the_o bâshop_n of_o his_o peculiar_a diocese_n and_o not_o actual_o a_o metropolitan_a until_o divers_a church_n in_o the_o same_o province_n be_v constitute_v there_o be_v a_o consociation_n among_o themselves_o and_o a_o subordination_n of_o they_o to_o he_o as_o their_o primate_n so_o that_o the_o function_n of_o metropolitan_o or_o archbishop_n be_v less_o beholdinge_v to_o master_n doctor_n than_o the_o call_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n of_o the_o former_a he_o speak_v doubtful_o lib._n 4._o cap._n 5._o p._n 130._o their_o superiority_n arise_v as_o beza_n suppose_v from_o the_o very_a light_n of_o nature_n directinge_v and_o force_v of_o necessity_n urge_v man_n to_o that_o course_n but_o as_o i_o rather_o think_v from_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o other_o he_o affirm_v very_o peremptory_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 139._o 143._o that_o the_o call_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v of_o divine_a institution_n the_o substance_n then_o of_o that_o episcopal_a function_n which_o he_o hold_v to_o be_v a_o divine_a ordinance_n the_o d._n have_v place_v in_o these_o particular_n 1._o that_o they_o be_v diocesan_n bishop_n or_o overseer_n of_o a_o diocese_n 2._o that_o they_o be_v superior_a in_o degree_n to_o other_o minister_n 3._o that_o they_o have_v a_o singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n during_o life_n and_o 4._o a_o peerless_a power_n both_o of_o ordination_n and_o of_o jurisdiction_n in_o their_o place_n loe_o here_o his_o enumeration_n and_o withal_o how_o he_o omit_v therein_o and_o that_o of_o purpose_n as_o it_o seem_v four_a other_o more_o substantial_a wise_o the_o d._n omit_v 4._o substantial_a and_o less_o questionable_a point_n of_o the_o bps._n function_n but_o yeâ_n wise_o and_o less_o questionable_a point_n of_o their_o function_n who_o first_o have_v the_o name_n of_o bishop_n appropriate_v to_o they_o in_o the_o ancent_a church_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o be_v 1._o pastor_n of_o their_o church_n bind_v by_o their_o office_n to_o dispense_v the_o word_n and_o sacrament_n to_o their_o people_n and_o therefore_o 2._o tie_v to_o make_v their_o positive_a residency_n in_o that_o one_o city_n or_o church_n whereof_o they_o have_v the_o charge_n 3._o assist_v also_o every_o of_o they_o with_o his_o presbytery_n or_o senate_n of_o elder_n without_o who_o advyce_n and_o consent_n in_o church-matter_n nothing_o of_o weight_n be_v do_v and_o 4._o not_o subordinate_v to_o the_o jurisdiction_n or_o censure_n of_o any_o one_o bishop_n superior_a unto_o he_o but_o of_o these_o point_n more_o he_o reafter_o lib._n 3._o &_o 4._o i_o now_o purpose_v not_o to_o insist_v on_o this_o defect_n in_o his_o lay_n down_o of_o the_o substantial_a part_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n neither_o will_v i_o contend_v about_o the_o continuance_n of_o their_o presidencie_n or_o singular_a pre-eminence_n whether_o it_o be_v essential_a or_o accidental_a to_o enjoy_v it_o constant_o for_o term_v of_o life_n nor_o yet_o magnify_v the_o d._n wisdom_n in_o his_o cunning_a conceal_n of_o they_o as_o know_v how_o it_o wipe_v his_o diocesan_n over_o the_o shin_n in_o this_o rather_o i_o disire_v to_o give_v or_o receive_v satissaction_n whether_o that_o singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n and_o peerless_a power_n which_o he_o ascribe_v unto_o bishop_n be_v not_o a_o sole_a superiority_n or_o sole_a power_n of_o rule_n as_o the_o refuter_fw-la affirm_v and_o this_o i_o the_o rather_o desire_v because_o the_o doctor_n be_v so_o high_o offend_v with_o the_o word_n sole_a that_o as_o oft_o as_o he_o find_v it_o use_v by_o his_o refuter_fw-la in_o this_o question_n he_o reward_v he_o with_o these_o or_o the_o like_a counterbuff_v at_o every_o turn_n whence_o come_v this_o sole_a i_o pray_v you_o that_o have_v so_o oft_o be_v foist_v in_o i_o fear_v great_o from_o shameless_o the_o doct._n stander_v shameless_o a_o evil_a conscience_n resolve_v to_o oppugn_v and_o d_o face_n the_o truth_n lib._n 3._o pag_n 118._o and_o in_o the_o next_o page_n god_n amend_v that_o soul_n that_o so_o often_o foy_v in_o that_o sole_a beside_o my_o meaning_n and_o my_o word_n and_o again_o pag._n 126_o o_o defile_a conscience_n which_o cease_v not_o to_o ascribe_v such_o odious_a and_o absurd_a asserâions_n to_o i_o thus_o and_o thus_o be_v m._n doctor_n please_v to_o declaim_v why_o but_o how_o shall_v the_o word_n sole_a or_o the_o name_n of_o sovereignty_n or_o 7._o sect._n 7._o sole_a ruleâe_v âe_z so_o odious_a and_o offensive_a to_o the_o doctor_n ear_n when_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o face_n the_o thing_n be_v so_o please_v to_o he_o that_o he_o plead_v for_o it_o tooth_n and_o nail_n to_o ask_v as_o he_o do_v lib._n 3._o pag._n 20._o &_o 68_o &_o 69._o where_o do_v i_o say_v in_o all_o thâ_n sermon_n that_o bishop_n have_v or_o must_v have_v sole_a power_n or_o jurisdiction_n and_o whether_o bishop_n can_v be_v superior_a to_o presbyter_n in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n or_o iuriâaiction_n unlâsse_o they_o have_v all_o the_o sole_a pâwâr_n thus_o to_o ask_v i_o say_v help_v little_a either_o to_o frâe_v he_o from_o give_v way_n to_o those_o assertion_n which_o he_o seem_v to_o abhor_v or_o to_o make_v his_o refuter_fw-la guilty_a of_o so_o evil_a and_o defile_v a_o conscience_n as_o he_o accuse_v he_o of_o nay_o if_o he_o discharge_v a_o good_a conscience_n he_o must_v confess_v either_o that_o his_o word_n do_v not_o faithful_o express_v his_o meaning_n or_o that_o he_o mean_v to_o give_v unto_o bishop_n that_o sol_fw-mi pâwer_fw-fr of_o rule_n which_o his_o refuter_fw-la gather_v from_o his_o word_n for_o what_o difference_n be_v there_o betwixt_o that_o singularity_n of_o pre-eminence_n which_o he_o make_v the_o first_o branch_n of_o the_o bishop_n superiority_n serm_n pag._n 32._o and_o that_o sole_a superiority_n or_o sole_a power_n of_o rule_n which_o the_o refuter_fw-la speak_v of_o do_v he_o not_o teach_v we_o out_o of_o cyprian_a and_o herom_n pa._n 33._o 34_o that_o the_o government_n and_o the_o whole_a care_n of_o the_o church_n appertain_v to_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v one_o only_o and_o that_o his_o singular_a pre-eminence_n be_v a_o peerless_a power_n and_o eminent_a above_o all_o yea_o such_o as_o admit_v no_o partner_n pag._n 36._o &_o 46_o and_o do_v he_o not_o afterward_o pag._n 45._o 46._o 47._o undertake_v to_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o bishop_n govern_v in_o foro_fw-la externo_fw-la not_o only_o the_o people_n but_o the_o presbyter_n also_o of_o a_o whole_a diocese_n as_o have_v authority_n to_o guide_v and_o direct_v they_o as_o their_o ruler_n and_o to_o censure_v and_o correct_v they_o as_o their_o judge_n do_v he_o not_o serm_n pag._n 30._o as_o be_v already_o show_v in_o the_o former_a chapter_n sect_n 10._o out_o of_o ignatius_n make_v 3._o degree_n of_o minister_n deacon_n priest_n and_o bishop_n under_o christ_n the_o deacon_n subject_a to_o the_o
those_o seven_o church_n 2._o if_o the_o church_n both_o of_o city_n &_o country_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o b._n of_o the_o city_n 3._o if_o the_o parish_n both_o of_o city_n &_o country_n have_v neither_o bishop_n nor_o presbytery_n but_o presbyter_n several_o assign_v to_o they_o 4._o if_o the_o presbyter_n of_o the_o country_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n &_o not_o only_o they_o but_o also_o the_o rural_a bishop_n be_v subject_a to_o his_o authority_n all_o which_o i_o have_v by_o most_o evident_a argument_n and_o testimony_n prove_v already_o then_o do_v the_o several_a congregation_n and_o parish_n which_o i_o have_v also_o prove_v be_v all_o but_o member_n of_o one_o body_n depend_v upon_o the_o chief_a church_n in_o the_o city_n as_o their_o head_n neither_o have_v they_o the_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n whereof_o they_o speak_v as_o i_o have_v also_o prove_v before_o all_o this_o wind_n shake_v no_o corn_n a_o short_a answer_n will_v serve_v to_o all_o these_o particular_n 1._o the_o matter_n hang_v yet_o in_o question_n whether_o every_o of_o those_o church_n do_v include_v at_o least_o intentional_o the_o whole_a city_n and_o the_o country_n which_o afterwards_o be_v subject_v to_o the_o mother_n church_n of_o the_o city_n also_o whither_o parish_n be_v multiply_v &_o presbyter_n assign_v to_o they_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o he_o suppose_v yea_o the_o contrary_a of_o this_o for_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v maintain_v by_o the_o d_o as_o be_v before_o observe_v 2._o as_o for_o those_o argument_n and_o testimony_n whereby_o he_o say_v he_o have_v already_o prove_v the_o particulars_n which_o he_o hearâ_n assume_v for_o undoubted_a truth_n they_o be_v every_o mother_n son_n of_o they_o of_o under_o age_n &_o neither_o of_o growth_n nor_o strength_n to_o bear_v out_o the_o matter_n and_o sway_v the_o conscience_n of_o any_o that_o consider_v what_o be_v the_o question_n the_o reader_n will_v remember_v that_o the_o point_n here_o deny_v be_v that_o there_o be_v in_o every_o of_o these_o church_n many_o congregation_n which_o depend_v upon_o one_o as_o chief_a without_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n in_o themselves_o all_o his_o testimony_n be_v as_o appeareth_z cap._n 2._o of_o this_o defence_n far_o beyond_o the_o compass_n of_o the_o first_o 200_o year_n the_o counterfeit_n epistle_n of_o clâmens_n and_o anicetus_n except_v which_o he_o cit_v cap._n 2._o sect_n 3._o yet_o need_v i_o not_o except_v they_o see_v the_o first_o author_n of_o they_o be_v a_o very_a novice_n in_o respect_n of_o true_a antiquity_n as_o the_o doctor_n well_o know_v wherefore_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v the_o valour_n of_o the_o doctor_n best_a proof_n in_o this_o enthymem_fw-la draw_v out_o of_o the_o best_a of_o they_o thus_o it_o appear_v by_o counsel_n and_o father_n after_o constantine_n time_n or_o a_o liâle_n before_o that_o parish_n in_o city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v be_v subject_v to_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o city_n and_o member_n of_o one_o diocesan_n body_n ergo_fw-la at_o the_o time_n of_o write_v the_o revelation_n there_o be_v in_o every_o of_o the_o 7._o church_n diverse_a congregation_n which_o depend_v on_o one_o chief_a without_o prower_n of_o government_n in_o themselves_o at_o length_n the_o doctor_n come_v to_o the_o defence_n of_o his_o assumption_n 54._o sect._n 23._o add_v sect_n 7._o def_n pag._n â2_n 54._o which_o affirm_v as_o the_o refuter_fw-la true_o gather_v from_o his_o own_o express_a word_n serm_n pag._n 18._o that_o the_o 7._o church_n of_o asia_n be_v great_a and_o ample_a city_n and_o not_o the_o city_n alone_o but_o also_o the_o country_n adjoyningâ_n and_o because_o his_o refuter_fw-la tell_v he_o pag._n 54._o it_o be_v faulty_a both_o in_o word_n and_o matter_n the_o doctor_n charge_v he_o to_o cavil_n egregious_o but_o be_v not_o slanderer_n not_o the_o refut_o but_o the_o d._n be_v the_o caviller_n or_o at_o least_o slanderer_n the_o d._n rather_o a_o egregious_a caviller_n at_o least_o a_o notable_a slanderer_n if_o his_o refuter_n censure_v be_v true_a first_o for_o the_o word_n i_o demand_v again_o as_o his_o refuter_fw-la do_v before_o who_o ever_o say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v a_o great_a city_n who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o city_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o church_n a_o other_o the_o d._n can_v deny_v the_o late_a but_o he_o labour_v to_o excuse_v the_o former_a if_o say_v he_o he_o discern_v the_o speech_n which_o i_o use_v to_o be_v unproper_a have_v he_o not_o so_o much_o neither_o arâ_n i_o mean_v rhetoric_n or_o logic_n nor_o grace_n i_o mean_v charity_n as_o either_o to_o conceyve_v i_o to_o have_v speak_v by_o a_o trope_n or_o to_o explain_v my_o speech_n by_o such_o a_o enunciation_n as_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o argument_n do_v require_v why_o how_o can_v the_o d._n expect_v so_o much_o either_o art_n or_o grace_n at_o their_o hand_n who_o he_o esteem_v to_o be_v very_a weakling_n for_o learning_n or_o judgement_n and_o in_o affection_n whole_o alienate_v from_o our_o church-governor_n and_o such_o as_o be_v full_a of_o odious_a censure_n etc._n etc._n will_v not_o without_o prejudice_n or_o partiality_n read_v what_o be_v true_o say_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o our_o church_n for_o so_o he_o speak_v of_o they_o pag._n 1._o 3._o 9_o 10._o of_o his_o preface_n before_o his_o sermon_n if_o therefore_o himself_o discern_v his_o own_o speech_n to_o be_v improper_a have_v he_o not_o so_o much_o i_o say_v not_o rhetoric_n or_o logic_n to_o explain_v his_o meaning_n but_o grace_n that_o be_v prudence_n or_o charity_n to_o prevent_v both_o all_o mistakinge_a in_o the_o simple_a reader_n and_o all_o cavil_v in_o his_o odious-censuring_a opposite_n by_o a_o plain_a and_o naked_a delivery_n of_o his_o true_a meaning_n have_v he_o remember_v that_o he_o be_v to_o prove_v the_o church_n to_o be_v proper_o diocese_n he_o may_v have_v conceive_v that_o his_o reader_n of_o all_o sort_n will_v expect_v proper_a and_o not_o improper_a speech_n to_o conclude_v his_o purpose_n for_o how_o hang_v this_o reason_n together_o in_o the_o doctor_n logic_n the_o church_n be_v improper_o the_o city_n and_o country_n adjoin_v therefore_o stout_o the_o doct._n reason_v stout_o they_o be_v proper_o diocese_n mutato_fw-la genere_fw-la predicationis_fw-la non_fw-la valet_fw-la consequentia_fw-la it_o be_v a_o poor_a defence_n therefore_o for_o he_o to_o demand_v as_o he_o do_v who_o ever_o hear_v that_o star_n be_v angel_n or_o that_o the_o cup_n be_v blood_n because_o it_o be_v say_v in_o his_o text_n the_o 7._o star_n be_v the_o angel_n and_o christ_n elsewhere_o say_v this_o cup_n be_v my_o blood_n if_o he_o can_v show_v any_o text_n either_o of_o scripture_n or_o any_o author_n old_a or_o new_a that_o have_v say_v as_o he_o do_v we_o will_v cease_v to_o wonder_v at_o the_o strangeness_n of_o his_o speech_n but_o when_o he_o further_o demand_v whither_o when_o he_o say_v the_o church_n be_v the_o city_n and_o the_o country_n his_o refuter_fw-la can_v not_o understand_v he_o as_o speak_v after_o that_o most_o usual_a metonymy_n of_o the_o christian_a people_n in_o the_o city_n and_o country_n nor_o yet_o explain_v his_o word_n as_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o argument_n contain_v in_o his_o speech_n do_v lead_v he_o i_o answer_v in_o the_o refuter_n behalf_n he_o do_v well_o perceive_v by_o the_o doctor_n word_n follow_v where_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o intent_n and_o hope_n the_o apostle_n have_v to_o convert_v the_o whole_a people_n of_o city_n and_o country_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o presbyter_n which_o they_o ordain_v in_o every_o city_n etc._n etc._n that_o if_o he_o have_v limit_v his_o speech_n only_o to_o those_o few_o that_o be_v already_o convert_v to_o the_o faith_n the_o doctor_n may_v have_v have_v a_o just_a quarrel_n against_o he_o for_o pervert_v his_o meaning_n wherefore_o though_o he_o find_v fault_n with_o his_o word_n as_o he_o have_v good_a cause_n yet_o he_o stay_v not_o there_o but_o contradict_v also_o the_o matter_n or_o meaning_n notwithstanding_o he_o do_v explain_v his_o word_n so_o as_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o argument_n do_v lead_v he_o viz._n that_o those_o 7._o church_n contain_v the_o people_n of_o those_o 7_o city_n whether_o already_o convert_v or_o to_o be_v convert_v hereafter_o by_o the_o bishop_n &_o presbyter_n of_o each_o city_n for_o so_o he_o seem_v to_o interpret_v himself_o serm_n pag._n 19_o but_o he_o dare_v not_o in_o plain_a term_n so_o affirm_v for_o then_o the_o simple_a of_o his_o reader_n may_v have_v reply_v that_o those_o church_n for_o the_o present_a contain_v no_o more_o of_o the_o people_n in_o city_n or_o country_n than_o such_o as_o be_v already_o bring_v to_o
sufficient_o prove_v before_o but_o this_o be_v the_o poor_a shift_n to_o pay_v he_o once_o again_o with_o his_o own_o pag._n 71._o which_o the_o doct._n usual_o fly_v unto_o when_o he_o have_v nothing_o to_o justify_v his_o assertion_n he_o persuade_v himself_o such_o be_v his_o judgement_n that_o in_o the_o question_n of_o diocese_n and_o diocesan_n bishop_n he_o have_v the_o upperhand_n because_o he_o have_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v such_o bishop_n and_o church_n in_o the_o 2._o or_o 3._o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o when_o he_o be_v foil_v in_o any_o of_o his_o reason_n that_o shall_v prove_v the_o call_n of_o such_o bishop_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n he_o fly_v to_o this_o as_o his_o refuge_n i_o have_v already_o prove_v the_o church_n to_o be_v diocese_n and_o the_o bishop_n diocesan_n and_o therefore_o if_o you_o grant_v that_o the_o function_n of_o bishop_n be_v institute_v of_o god_n and_o that_o bishop_n be_v ordain_v or_o approve_v of_o the_o apostle_n than_o you_o grant_v asmuch_o as_o i_o intend_v to_o prove_v this_o then_o be_v his_o best_a defence_n the_o reader_n may_v see_v the_o doctor_n sincerity_n and_o that_o he_o be_v not_o wrong_v by_o his_o refuter_fw-la when_o he_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o deceive_v his_o reader_n by_o a_o equivocation_n in_o the_o word_n bishop_n but_o in_o deed_n he_o much_o wrong_v his_o refuter_fw-la and_o all_o they_o who_o he_o call_v his_o consort_n when_o for_o a_o requital_n he_o say_v that_o they_o do_v deceive_v their_o reader_n in_o that_o they_o will_v persuade_v they_o that_o because_o the_o name_n episcopus_fw-la &_o presbyter_n be_v confound_v therefore_o also_o the_o office_n be_v confound_v for_o where_o do_v the_o refuter_fw-la or_o his_o consort_n thus_o argue_v the_o objection_n which_o he_o before_o take_v notice_n of_o and_o pretend_v in_o all_o this_o discourse_n to_o remove_v be_v as_o himself_o set_v it_o down_o pag._n 65._o that_o the_o name_n episcopus_fw-la in_o the_o apostolical_a writing_n be_v give_v to_o presbyter_n and_o that_o bishop_n such_o as_o we_o be_v not_o mention_v in_o the_o scripture_n for_o answer_v whereunto_o he_o say_v then_o and_o now_o repeat_v it_o again_o that_o when_o presbyter_n be_v call_v episcopi_fw-la those_o who_o afterward_o and_o now_o be_v call_v bishop_n be_v then_o call_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o church_n this_o he_o first_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v by_o that_o instance_n of_o epa._n phroditus_fw-la phil._n 2._o 25_o but_o his_o fail_v therein_o be_v sufficient_o discover_v now_o once_o again_o he_o attempt_v it_o let_v we_o attend_v whether_o his_o success_n be_v any_o better_a for_o say_v he_o as_o i_o say_v in_o the_o sermon_n while_o the_o episcopal_a power_n be_v in_o 72._o sect._n 12._o add_v sect_n 16._o pa._n 71._o 72._o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolic_a man_n those_o who_o have_v that_o power_n be_v call_v the_o apostle_n and_o what_o then_o will_v he_o hence_o conclude_v that_o therefore_o bishop_n such_o as_o afterward_o and_o now_o have_v the_o name_n appropriate_v to_o they_o be_v then_o call_v apostle_n do_v it_o not_o rather_o follow_v much_o better_a on_o the_o contrary_a that_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n the_o name_n of_o apostle_n be_v give_v to_o no_o other_o then_o to_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o apostolic_a man_n which_o be_v as_o himself_o acknowledge_v pag_n 72_o evangelist_n have_v not_o the_o doct._n then_o spin_v a_o saire_fw-fr thread_n to_o strangle_v his_o own_o cause_n but_o since_o he_o pretend_v to_o repeat_v the_o word_n of_o his_o sermon_n why_o do_v he_o curtal_n they_o there_o he_o say_v pag_n 71_o while_o the_o episcopal_a power_n be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n in_o the_o apostle_n &_o apostolic_a man_n those_o who_o also_o have_v that_o power_n be_v call_v apostle_n now_o he_o leave_v out_o these_o word_n for_o the_o most_o part_n and_o also_o may_v i_o entreat_v he_o plain_o to_o inform_v we_o what_o move_v he_o to_o make_v this_o change_n it_o seem_v he_o think_v these_o word_n at_o the_o first_o needful_a to_o be_v add_v as_o indeed_o they_o be_v to_o conclude_v his_o purpose_n for_o unless_o he_o can_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o presbyter_n which_o he_o call_v episcopal_a power_n be_v in_o some_o other_o beside_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolic_a man_n of_o evangelist_n and_o that_o those_o also_o be_v call_v apostle_n or_o at_o least_o the_o apostle_n of_o the_o church_n he_o can_v infer_v his_o former_a assertion_n to_o wit_n that_o those_o who_o be_v now_o call_v bishop_n be_v then_o call_v the_o apostle_n of_o the_o church_n and_o now_o it_o seem_v he_o foresee_v that_o the_o testimony_n afterward_o allege_v can_v prove_v any_o other_o than_o the_o very_a apostle_n or_o evangelist_n who_o he_o call_v apostolic_a man_n to_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o apostle_n in_o the_o apostolical_a writing_n though_o his_o witness_n speak_v what_o they_o can_v &_o he_o make_v his_o best_a advantage_n of_o they_o 1._o he_o say_v that_o ambrose_n by_o apostle_n in_o some_o place_n of_o scripture_n as_o 1._o cor._n 12._o 28._o ephes_n 4._o 11._o understand_v bishop_n but_o be_v the_o doctor_n persuade_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n understand_v such_o bishop_n as_o be_v now_o question_v by_o the_o word_n apostle_n in_o those_o place_n if_o not_o why_o lead_v he_o his_o reader_n into_o a_o error_n and_o persuade_v he_o to_o believe_v dissalow_v the_o doct._n lead_v his_o reader_n into_o that_o error_n which_o himself_o dissalow_v that_o which_o himself_o dissallow_v if_o he_o be_v why_o urge_v he_o not_o those_o scripture_n to_o prove_v the_o main_a quaestion_n see_v none_o can_v be_v find_v more_o pregnant_a than_o these_o if_o that_o be_v their_o meaning_n to_o prove_v the_o doctrine_n of_o his_o sermon_n viz._n that_o the_o function_n of_o bishop_n such_o as_o we_o be_v of_o divine_a institution_n and_o why_o do_v he_o reach_v the_o contrary_a in_o say_v as_o before_o pag._n 70._o that_o the_o word_n apostoli_fw-la absolute_o use_v be_v a_o title_n of_o those_o which_o be_v send_v of_o god_n with_o authority_n apostolical_a moreover_o can_v the_o doctor_n be_v ignorant_a that_o ambrose_n in_o ephes_n 4._o 11._o do_v also_o say_v that_o the_o evangelist_n be_v deacon_n and_o that_o pastor_n be_v and_o may_v be_v lectorâ_n quilectionibus_fw-la saginent_n populum_fw-la audientem_fw-la &_o that_o magistri_fw-la so_o he_o translate_v the_o word_n didascaâj_fw-la teacher_n exorâista_fw-la sunt_fw-la quiain_a teclesiaipfi_n compeseunt_fw-la et_fw-la verberant_fw-la inquieto_n if_o therefore_o the_o doct._n will_v have_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o diocesan_n bishop_n such_o as_o we_o be_v mention_v in_o the_o apostolical_a writing_n under_o the_o name_n not_o of_o bishop_n but_o of_o apostle_n because_o ambrose_n faith_n apostoli_fw-la episcopi_fw-la sunt_fw-la the_o apostle_n be_v bishop_n let_v he_o free_o confess_v that_o the_o function_n of_o lector_n &_o exercist_n such_o as_o the_o papist_n will_v have_v to_o be_v sevarall_a order_n of_o the_o clergic_a be_v also_o establish_v in_o the_o apostle_n time_n &_o mention_v in_o their_o writing_n though_o not_o under_o the_o same_o name_n yet_o under_o the_o name_n of_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n or_o master_n ephes_n 4._o 11._o and_o that_o ambrose_n testify_v the_o same_o in_o the_o word_n aaforego_v for_o if_o he_o shall_v refuse_v to_o subscribe_v to_o this_o late_a inference_n he_o must_v pardon_v we_o this_o once_o for_o not_o embrace_v the_o former_a 2._o and_o see_v he_o faith_n cyprian_n speak_v to_o the_o like_a purpose_n lib._n 3._o epist_n 9_o apostle_n ideft_v episcopos_fw-la &_o prapositos_fw-la dominus_fw-la elegin_v the_o l._n choose_v apostle_n that_o be_v bishop_n let_v i_o again_o demand_v of_o mr_n doct._n whether_o he_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o apostle_n who_o our_o lord_n do_v choose_v and_o who_o after_o our_o saviour_n ascension_n choose_v deacon_n as_o cyprian_a in_o the_o same_o place_n testify_v be_v diocesan_n bishop_n such_o as_o we_o if_o not_o how_o will_v cyprian_n word_n further_o his_o purpose_n which_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o in_o the_o apostolical_a writing_n such_o bishop_n be_v call_v apostle_n if_o he_o be_v why_o be_v he_o ashamed_a especial_o see_v he_o have_v bishop_n bilson_n perpet_n govern_v pag._n 226._o allege_v both_o cyprian_a &_o ambrose_n &_o bishop_n barlow_n serm_n in_o act_n 20._o 28._o fol._n 17_o urge_v cyprian_a for_o that_o purpose_n to_o inrowle_v the_o 12._o apostle_n among_o other_o bishop_n which_o he_o affirm_v to_o be_v ordain_v of_o god_n in_o his_o last_o argument_n hereafter_o follow_v cap._n 6_o nay_o why_o affirm_v he_o the_o contrary_a in_o this_o 3._o chap_v viz._n that_o some_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o proper_o bishop_n yea_o he_o there_o
have_v commit_v to_o they_o episcopal_a authority_n both_o in_o respect_n of_o ordination_n &_o jurisdiction_n to_o be_v exercise_v in_o those_o church_n i_o answer_v that_o he_o mingle_v and_o that_o deceitful_o truth_n and_o falsehood_n together_o for_o think_v it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o epistle_n do_v presuppose_v a_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n commit_v to_o they_o yet_o be_v it_o false_a and_o he_o but_o beg_v the_o question_n in_o assume_v it_o for_o truth_n that_o the_o authority_n of_o ordain_v and_o censure_v be_v a_o authority_n episcopal_a that_o be_v proper_a to_o bishop_n only_o and_o that_o the_o power_n and_o authority_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v give_v they_o either_o then_o and_o not_o before_o when_o they_o be_v appoint_v to_o stay_v in_o those_o place_n or_o there_o and_o no_o where_o else_o to_o be_v exercise_v by_o they_o a_o bare_a denial_n of_o these_o particular_n false_o presuppose_v by_o the_o doctor_n be_v sufficient_a answer_n till_o he_o prove_v by_o some_o part_n of_o paul_n epistle_n that_o they_o be_v by_o he_o presuppose_v in_o they_o his_o second_o argument_n in_o his_o own_o analysis_n be_v the_o same_o which_o 57_o sect._n 2._o add_v pag._n 75._o &_o sect_n 2._o p._n 75_o 76._o &_o 57_o his_o refuter_fw-la take_v to_o be_v the_o first_o and_o it_o stand_v thus_o if_o the_o epistle_n write_v to_o tim._n and_o tit._n be_v the_o very_a pattern_n and_o precedent_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n whereby_o the_o apostle_n inform_v they_o and_o in_o they_o all_o bishop_n how_o to_o exercise_v their_o function_n then_o tim._n and_o tit._n be_v bishop_n but_o the_o antecedent_n be_v true_a therefore_o the_o consequent_a to_o discover_v the_o weakness_n of_o the_o consequence_n or_o proposition_n the_o doct._n be_v tell_v answ_o pag._n 137._o that_o the_o consequent_a depend_v not_o upon_o the_o antecedent_n but_o with_o this_o supposition_n which_o be_v false_a that_o the_o apostle_n by_o describe_v in_o these_o epistle_n the_o rule_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n intend_v to_o inform_v tim._n &_o tit._n as_o bishop_n and_o in_o they_o all_o other_o bishop_n how_o to_o carry_v themselves_o in_o those_o matter_n and_o if_o the_o doct._n have_v be_v as_o willing_a to_o apprehend_v his_o right_a meaning_n as_o to_o pick_v occasion_n of_o quarrel_v without_o any_o just_a cause_n give_v he_o may_v have_v discern_v that_o the_o supposition_n whereof_o he_o speak_v be_v not_o of_o the_o natural_a hypothesis_n of_o the_o proposition_n impugn_a but_o such_o a_o limitation_n of_o the_o antecedent_n or_o assumption_n as_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v supply_v if_o he_o will_v have_v the_o proposition_n or_o consequence_n to_o pass_v uncontrolled_a wherefore_o as_o he_o may_v have_v spare_v his_o crocadile-like_a mourning_n over_o his_o ref_n alas_o good_a man_n you_o know_v not_o what_o the_o supposition_n of_o a_o hypotheticall_a proposition_n ãâã_d so_o have_v he_o weigh_v his_o own_o rule_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 3._o sect_n 3._o for_o the_o find_v out_o of_o that_o hypothesis_n which_o in_o a_o connexive_a argument_n be_v want_v to_o make_v a_o perfect_a syllogism_n perhaps_o he_o may_v have_v perceive_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o consequence_n which_o he_o will_v seem_v not_o to_o see_v for_o the_o true_a hypothesis_n which_o be_v employ_v in_o this_o connexive_a argument_n and_o must_v be_v supply_v to_o make_v it_o a_o perfect_a simple_a syllogism_n can_v be_v none_o other_o than_o this_o they_o must_v needs_o be_v bishop_n and_o ordain_v to_o that_o function_n to_o who_o such_o epistle_n be_v direct_v as_o be_v pattern_n and_o precedent_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n etc._n etc._n or_o more_o general_o thus_o every_o person_n to_o who_o a_o epistle_n or_o speech_n it_o the_o doct._n discern_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o argument_n exchange_v it_o be_v direct_v which_o contain_v the_o pattern_n or_o precedent_n of_o any_o function_n or_o direction_n how_o to_o exercise_v it_o be_v undoubted_o invest_v in_o the_o same_o function_n and_o why_o now_o i_o pray_v you_o good_a mr._n doct._n may_v not_o this_o proposition_n be_v deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o i_o will_v spaâe_v labour_n in_o refute_v it_o for_o i_o suppose_v yourself_o perceive_v the_o weakness_n of_o it_o and_o therefore_o give_v we_o the_o exchange_n of_o a_o other_o argument_n though_o you_o pretend_v another_o cause_n of_o the_o exchange_n and_o since_o you_o will_v not_o argue_v with_o t._n c._n to_o who_o answerthe_n ref_n direct_o point_v as_o with_o the_o finger_n but_o be_v willing_a to_o let_v he_o rest_v in_o peace_n neither_o will_v i_o argue_v against_o doctor_n whitgift_n but_o afford_v he_o the_o like_a kindness_n only_o whereas_o you_o ask_v the_o refuter_fw-la how_o he_o can_v be_v so_o ignorant_a or_o without_o judgement_n as_o to_o think_v that_o doct._n whitgift_n in_o speak_v of_o the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o a_o bishop_n contain_v in_o those_o epistle_n do_v mean_a only_o that_o description_n of_o a_o bishop_n which_o be_v set_v down_o 1._o tim._n 3_o to_o requite_v your_o kindness_n i_o demand_v how_o you_o can_v be_v so_o ignorant_a or_o void_a of_o judgement_n as_o to_o think_v that_o when_o doctor_n whitgift_n say_v that_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o the_o epistle_n write_v to_o tim_n declare_v he_o to_o be_v a_o bishop_n see_v therein_o be_v contain_v the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o a_o bishop_n &_o diverse_a precept_n peculiar_a to_o that_o function_n he_o mean_v by_o the_o office_n and_o duty_n of_o a_o bishop_n that_o ministry_n which_o be_v common_a to_o all_o minister_n for_o so_o you_o seem_v to_o interpret_v his_o word_n when_o you_o affirm_v pag._n 76._o this_o to_o be_v his_o meaning_n that_o direction_n be_v give_v to_o timothy_n throughout_o the_o epistle_n for_o the_o discharge_n of_o his_o office_n either_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o ministry_n common_a to_o all_o minister_n or_o of_o his_o episcopal_a function_n chief_o in_o regard_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n and_o herein_o you_o tender_v his_o credit_n less_o than_o you_o will_v seem_v when_o you_o make_v he_o to_o argue_v in_o this_o fashion_n the_o epistle_n write_v to_o timothy_n do_v give_v he_o direction_n for_o the_o discharge_n of_o his_o episcopal_a function_n ergo_fw-la they_o do_v declare_v that_o he_o be_v a_o bishop_n for_o this_o be_v to_o make_v he_o guilty_a of_o your_o own_o fault_n in_o beg_v of_o the_o question_n question_n the_o doct._n beg_v the_o question_n as_o you_o do_v when_o you_o add_v to_o your_o assumption_n or_o antecedent_n that_o supposition_n before_o examine_v for_o if_o that_o be_v as_o you_o say_v it_o be_v the_o plain_a meaning_n of_o the_o assumption_n then_o your_o second_o argument_n beg_v the_o question_n in_o pitiful_a manner_n thus_o the_o apostle_n intent_n in_o his_o epistle_n write_v to_o tim_n and_o tit_n be_v to_o inform_v they_o as_o bishop_n how_o to_o exercise_v their_o episcopal_a function_n ergo_fw-la those_o epistle_n show_v that_o they_o be_v bishop_n no_o merveil_v therefore_o if_o the_o doctor_n be_v desirous_a to_o cover_v the_o beggary_n of_o his_o reason_n with_o the_o 3._o sect._n 3._o ad_fw-la pag._n 77._o &_o 78._o sect_n 3._o shredd_v of_o a_o new_a shape_a syllogism_n which_o dispute_v thus_o whosoever_o describe_v unto_o timothy_n and_o titus_n their_o office_n and_o authority_n as_o they_o be_v governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n &_o crect_n and_o prescribe_v their_o duty_n in_o the_o execution_n thereof_o to_o be_v perform_v by_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n do_v plain_o describe_v the_o office_n and_o authority_n and_o prescribe_v the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n he_o presuppose_v they_o to_o be_v bishop_n the_o one_o of_o ephesus_n the_o other_o of_o crete_n but_o paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n describe_v unto_o they_o their_o office_n and_o authorittie_a as_o they_o be_v governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n etc._n etc._n do_v plain_o describe_v the_o office_n and_o prescribe_v the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n therefore_o paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n presuppose_v they_o to_o be_v bishop_n the_o one_o of_o ephesus_n the_o other_o of_o crect_n into_o this_o new_a frame_n he_o cast_v his_o argument_n as_o he_o pretend_v because_o the_o refuter_fw-la have_v confound_v himself_o with_o his_o own_o hypotheticall_a proposition_n but_o the_o reader_n be_v rather_o to_o judge_v that_o a_o false_a supposal_n of_o confusion_n in_o his_o refuter_fw-la have_v transport_v the_o doctor_n into_o such_o a_o maze_n that_o he_o have_v confound_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o reason_n the_o d._n confound_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o reason_n reason_n for_o where_o he_o shall_v according_a to_o his_o own_o project_n sect_n 1._o of_o
this_o chapter_n have_v give_v we_o a_o second_o reason_n for_o his_o first_o conclusion_n scz_n that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n by_o s._n paul_n he_o now_o tender_v we_o a_o second_o prosyllogisme_n to_o confirm_v the_o antecedent_n of_o his_o first_o argument_n but_o to_o let_v he_o go_v free_a with_o this_o fault_n i_o will_v answer_v this_o argument_n as_o it_o stand_v &_o first_o to_o the_o proposition_n which_o although_o it_o never_o see_v the_o sun_n before_o his_o defence_n come_v abroad_o he_o take_v for_o grant_v because_o t_n c_o and_o his_o refuter_fw-la have_v assail_v it_o in_o vain_a so_o he_o flatter_v himself_o in_o his_o own_o conceit_n but_o all_o in_o vain_a for_o a_o mean_a scholar_n then_o t._n c._n or_o his_o refuter_fw-la either_o may_v easy_o discern_v the_o inconsequence_n of_o his_o proposition_n although_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o have_v fortify_v the_o presupposal_n which_o he_o conclude_v with_o a_o double_a bulwark_n both_o of_o describe_v the_o authority_n and_o of_o prescribe_v the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n for_o s._n paul_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o elder_n of_o ephesus_n acts._n 20._o 18._o etc._n etc._n describe_v his_o own_o office_n and_o authority_n as_o he_o be_v the_o superintendent_n of_o that_o church_n &_o precedent_n of_o the_o presbytery_n there_o plain_o describe_v the_o office_n and_o authority_n of_o all_o superintendent_o or_o precedent_n in_o particular_a church_n &_o consequent_o prescribe_v the_o duty_n which_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v succeed_v in_o the_o like_a office_n till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v absurd_a from_o hence_o to_o infer_v that_o the_o apostle_n speech_n there_o presuppose_v his_o ordination_n to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o superintendent_n or_o precedent_n of_o the_o presbytery_n in_o that_o church_n of_o ephesus_n wherefore_o neither_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o apostle_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o tim_n &_o titus_n presuppose_v their_o ordination_n to_o the_o office_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n though_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o in_o describe_v their_o authority_n as_o they_o be_v governor_n of_o those_o church_n and_o in_o prescribe_v their_o duty_n such_o as_o be_v to_o perform_v by_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n till_o christ_n come_n he_o both_o describe_v the_o office_n and_o prescribe_v the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n but_o this_o which_o he_o assume_v for_o a_o truth_n i_o reject_v as_o a_o assertion_n no_o less_o void_a of_o truth_n then_o the_o main_a conclusion_n now_o in_o question_n for_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o this_o false_a supposition_n that_o none_o other_o than_o diocesan_n bishop_n have_v in_o those_o time_n or_o can_v have_v by_o succession_n the_o government_n of_o particular_a church_n now_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o he_o can_v say_v in_o defence_n thereof_o the_o assumption_n i_o prove_v say_v he_o by_o those_o particular_n wherein_o the_o episcopal_a 78._o sect._n 4._o add_v sect_n 3._o pa._n 78._o authority_n do_v chief_o consist_v both_o in_o respect_n of_o ordination_n tit._n 1._o 5._o 1._o tim._n 5._o 22._o and_o also_o of_o jurisdiction_n they_o be_v the_o censure_n of_o other_o minister_n doctrine_n 1._o tim._n 1._o 3._o 2._o tim._n 2._o 16._o tit._n 1._o 10._o 11._o &_o 3._o 9_o &_o judge_n oâ_n their_o person_n and_o conversation_n 1._o tim._n 5._o 19_o 20._o 21._o tit._n 3._o 10._o to_o which_o proof_n he_o answer_v nothing_o answer_v nothing_o no_o merveile_v if_o he_o have_v no_o answer_n to_o these_o proof_n as_o they_o be_v now_o fit_v to_o the_o assumption_n of_o his_o new_a shape_a argument_n if_o this_o be_v his_o meaning_n his_o best_a friend_n i_o think_v will_v scarce_o commend_v his_o honesty_n or_o discretion_n but_o if_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o these_o proof_n before_o lay_v down_o in_o his_o sermon_n receive_v no_o answer_n at_o all_o do_v he_o not_o too_o much_o forget_v himself_o since_o he_o take_v notice_n in_o the_o next_o page_n follow_v of_o this_o reason_n yield_v for_o the_o denial_n of_o his_o assumption_n viz._n that_o those_o instruction_n comprise_v in_o the_o place_n allege_v be_v not_o give_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n as_o bishop_n but_o particular_o to_o they_o as_o evangelist_n and_o in_o general_a to_o the_o presbyter_n etc._n etc._n but_o since_o this_o answer_n be_v in_o his_o eye_n no_o answer_n at_o all_o let_v we_o try_v whether_o it_o may_v not_o be_v say_v with_o more_o truth_n that_o his_o proof_n whereof_o he_o boast_v be_v no_o clear_a proof_n either_o of_o the_o principal_a point_n before_o deny_v or_o of_o those_o which_o he_o now_o assume_v he_o know_v full_a well_o that_o his_o refuter_fw-la flat_o deni_v that_o which_o he_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v in_o effect_v his_o assumption_n both_o before_o and_o now_o to_o wit_n that_o s._n paul_n have_v any_o intention_n to_o inform_v timothy_n and_o titus_n as_o bishop_n or_o any_o other_o diocesan_n bishop_n by_o they_o how_o to_o demean_v themselves_o in_o those_o particular_n of_o ordination_n &_o jurisdiction_n have_v he_o any_o argument_n to_o prove_v this_o or_o can_v he_o deduce_v it_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n before_o mention_v at_o least_o if_o he_o will_v needs_o cleave_v to_o his_o last_o assumption_n why_o be_v not_o the_o proof_n thereof_o if_o he_o have_v any_o contrive_v into_o form_n of_o argument_n be_v his_o syllogism_n so_o soon_o at_o a_o end_n i_o think_v he_o shall_v not_o expect_v any_o help_n in_o this_o case_n from_o his_o refuter_fw-la who_o he_o judge_v to_o be_v but_o a_o very_a bungler_n in_o the_o art_n of_o syllogise_v yet_o if_o it_o must_v needs_o be_v do_v to_o his_o hand_n i_o will_v do_v my_o best_a to_o give_v it_o the_o best_a coat_n i_o can_v and_o that_o be_v this_o whosoever_o describe_v unto_o timothy_n and_o titus_n their_o office_n and_o authority_n as_o they_o be_v governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n and_o prescribe_v their_o duty_n in_o the_o execution_n thereof_o to_o be_v perform_v by_o they_o and_o their_o succssor_n till_o christ_n come_v do_v describe_v their_o office_n &_o prescribe_v their_o duty_n in_o those_o particular_n wherein_o episcopal_a authority_n chief_o consist_v he_o do_v in_o so_o describe_v &_o prescribe_v plain_o describe_v the_o office_n and_o prescribe_v the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n but_o s._n paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n describe_v their_o office_n &_o authority_n as_o they_o be_v governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n and_o prescribe_v their_o duty_n in_o the_o execution_n thereof_o to_o be_v perform_v by_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n till_o christ_n come_v describe_v their_o office_n and_o prescribe_v their_o duty_n in_o those_o particular_n wherein_o piscopall_a authority_n consist_v for_o he_o describe_v their_o office_n and_o prescribe_v their_o duty_n in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n as_o the_o place_n before_o quote_v do_v show_v and_o in_o these_o particular_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n episcopal_a authority_n chief_o consist_v therefore_o s._n paul_n in_o so_o describe_v the_o authority_n and_o prescribe_v the_o duty_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n do_v plain_o describe_v the_o office_n and_o authority_n and_o prescribe_v the_o duty_n of_o bishop_n behold_v here_o good_a reader_n how_o the_o doctor_n after_o many_o wind_n in_o and_o out_o be_v retire_v back_o to_o that_o which_o he_o assume_v as_o you_o may_v see_v sect_n 1._o for_o the_o proof_n of_o his_o first_o argument_n viz._n that_o episcopal_a authority_n stand_v in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n this_o be_v then_o take_v for_o grant_v and_o so_o enforce_v to_o prove_v that_o timothy_n &_o titus_n their_o ordination_n to_o the_o function_n of_o bishop_n be_v presuppose_v by_o s._n paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o they_o in_o as_o much_o as_o they_o have_v that_o authority_n commit_v to_o they_o here_o it_o be_v again_o produce_v to_o justify_v the_o same_o conclusion_n because_o if_o episcopal_a authority_n consist_v in_o those_o particular_n they_o s._n paul_n describ_v of_o their_o authority_n and_o prescrib_v of_o their_o duty_n in_o the_o same_o particular_n argue_v the_o authority_n &_o duty_n of_o bishop_n to_o be_v describ_v in_o those_o epistle_n etc._n etc._n so_o to_o make_v a_o show_n of_o some_o variety_n of_o argument_n one_o assertion_n must_v come_v twice_o upon_o the_o stage_n for_o one_o purpose_n &_o that_o with_o a_o impudent_a stout_o the_o doct._n beg_v stout_o face_n to_o beg_v rather_o than_o with_o âound_a reason_n from_o god_n word_n to_o confirm_v what_o be_v well_o know_v to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o main_a point_n controvert_v for_o his_o add_v the_o authority_n of_o gregory_n nazianzen_n chrysostome_n 79
at_o this_o day_n in_o the_o manage_n of_o church-cause_n and_o by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v now_o say_v concern_v timothy_n &_o titus_n the_o same_o may_v be_v affirm_v of_o their_o government_n in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n &_o crect_n but_o he_o ask_v whether_o paul_n do_v not_o commit_v the_o ordination_n of_o minister_n unto_o titus_n without_o mention_v either_o of_o presbytery_n or_o people_n and_o we_o may_v ask_v he_o what_o mention_n he_o find_v there_o of_o prayer_n or_o hands-imposition_n which_o ought_v to_o concur_v with_o ordination_n if_o he_o can_v include_v they_o as_o be_v understand_v in_o the_o word_n katastese_n tit._n 1._o 5_o we_o have_v as_o good_a reason_n to_o include_v the_o assistance_n of_o other_o presbyter_n and_o the_o people_n approbation_n in_o the_o word_n follow_v hoo_n egoo_v soi_fw-fr dietaxamen_fw-la as_o i_o have_v appoint_v thou_o quis_fw-la enim_fw-la credat_fw-la paulum_fw-la etc._n etc._n who_o may_v believe_v paul_n otherwise_o to_o have_v order_v titus_n then_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o have_v in_o use_n muscul_fw-la loc_fw-la con_fw-mi de_fw-fr elect_a minist_n again_o he_o ask_v or_o rather_o argue_v in_o this_o manner_n be_v not_o all_o his_o precept_n for_o ordination_n and_o church-government_n direct_v only_o to_o titus_n for_o crete_n and_o to_o timothy_n for_o ephesus_n and_o do_v not_o this_o evident_o show_v that_o howsoever_o they_o may_v use_v either_o the_o presence_n or_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n or_o the_o counsel_n &_o advise_v of_o the_o presbyter_n in_o cause_n of_o great_a moment_n as_o prince_n also_o do_v in_o commonwealth_n yet_o the_o sway_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n be_v in_o they_o if_o there_o be_v any_o evidence_n or_o strength_n of_o truth_n in_o this_o reason_n they_o the_o like_a must_v be_v acknowledge_v in_o this_o that_o follow_v our_o saviour_n christ_n direct_v in_o singular_a term_n unto_o peter_n only_o both_o his_o whole_a speech_n concern_v the_o key_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o the_o power_n thereof_o math._n 16._o and_o that_o precept_n of_o feed_v his_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n and_o of_o confirm_v his_o brethren_n joh._n 21._o 15._o 17._o luk._n 22._o 32._o wherefore_o however_o peter_n may_v use_v the_o help_n rome_n the_o doct._n reason_v well_o for_o rome_n and_o assistance_n of_o his_o fellow-apostle_n in_o all_o those_o work_n and_o the_o presence_n or_o consent_n of_o the_o people_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o key_n yet_o the_o chief_a power_n and_o sway_v of_o all_o be_v in_o he_o alone_o good_a news_n for_o rome_n if_o the_o doctor_n will_v give_v allowance_n to_o his_o argument_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v such_o singular_a speech_n direct_v to_o one_o only_a do_v not_o argue_v in_o that_o one_o any_o such_o preheminent_a power_n as_o the_o romanist_n and_o prelatist_n do_v from_o thence_o gather_v so_o that_o since_o the_o doct._n can_v not_o prove_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v any_o such_o singular_a and_o sole_a power_n in_o church-government_n as_o the_o doctor_n judge_v to_o be_v due_a unto_o bishop_n it_o be_v plain_a that_o he_o build_v upon_o a_o vain_a and_o false_a presupposal_n when_o he_o say_v it_o be_v presuppose_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n that_o they_o have_v episcopal_a authority_n and_o that_o the_o direction_n give_v to_o they_o be_v precedent_n for_o diocesan_n bishop_n in_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o function_n but_o for_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o he_o have_v another_o argument_n in_o store_n thus_o frame_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v to_o inform_v not_o timothy_n and_o titus_n alone_o 83._o sect._n 10._o add_v sect_n 7._o pag_n 83._o as_o extraordinary_a person_n but_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n to_o the_o world_n end_n be_v write_v to_o inform_v diocesan_n bishop_n but_o those_o epistle_n be_v write_v to_o inform_v not_o timothy_n and_o titus_n alone_o as_o extraordinary_a person_n but_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n to_o the_o world_n end_n therefore_o they_o be_v write_v to_o inform_v diocesan_n bishop_n unto_o the_o assumption_n the_o refuter_fw-la answer_v by_o distinction_n thus_o that_o it_o be_v true_a if_o understand_v of_o successor_n in_o authority_n or_o power_n of_o perform_v the_o same_o work_n but_o false_a if_o mean_v of_o succession_n in_o the_o same_o office_n the_o doct._n therefore_o first_o indeavour_v to_o prove_v what_o his_o refuter_fw-la deny_v and_o yet_o in_o the_o wind_a up_o of_o all_o will_v persuade_v his_o reader_n that_o what_o the_o refuter_fw-la grant_v be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o assumption_n but_o he_o be_v to_o be_v advertise_v that_o unless_o he_o make_v good_a what_o his_o refuter_fw-la deny_v he_o can_v conclude_v what_o he_o undertake_v for_o whether_o we_o look_v to_o his_o former_a assertion_n which_o he_o say_v be_v here_o again_o prove_v himself_o do_v thus_o explain_v it_o sect_n 3._o in_o the_o beginning_n that_o in_o the_o epistle_n to_o tim._n and_o titus_n s._n paul_n intend_v to_o inform_v they_o as_o diocesan_n bishop_n and_o in_o they_o all_o other_o diocesan_n or_o whether_o we_o look_v to_o the_o near_a scoape_n of_o his_o word_n in_o his_o sermon_n pag._n 74._o it_o be_v evident_a he_o there_o intend_v to_o prove_v that_o which_o he_o suppose_v will_v be_v answer_v to_o his_o former_a objection_n viz._n that_o the_o thing_n speak_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v speak_v to_o they_o as_o extraordinary_a person_n who_o authority_n he_o shall_v have_v say_v office_n shall_v die_v with_o they_o which_o can_v be_v remove_v unless_o he_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v speak_v to_o they_o as_o person_n bear_v a_o ordinary_a function_n wherein_o their_o successor_n shall_v enjoy_v the_o same_o authority_n to_o the_o world_n end_n neither_o be_v this_o to_o deny_v his_o conclusion_n as_o he_o false_o affirm_v but_o to_o contradict_v his_o assumption_n in_o that_o sense_n which_o be_v necessary_a to_o make_v it_o good_a because_o otherwise_o he_o argue_v not_o ad_fw-la idem_fw-la let_v we_o therefore_o see_v how_o well_o his_o proof_n be_v fit_v to_o the_o assumption_n i_o prove_v it_o say_v he_o first_o by_o testimony_n both_o of_o paul_n and_o of_o ambrose_n and_o after_o by_o reason_n and_o first_o by_o s._n paul_n testimony_n that_o he_o streite_o charge_v timothy_n that_o the_o commandment_n and_o direction_n which_o he_o give_v he_o shall_v be_v keep_v inviolable_a until_o the_o appear_v of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n 1._o tim._n 6._o 14._o ergo_fw-la they_o be_v to_o be_v perform_v by_o such_o as_o shall_v have_v the_o like_a authority_n and_o the_o same_o office_n to_o the_o end_n the_o consequence_n of_o this_o enthymeme_n depend_v upon_o this_o proposition_n that_o the_o commandment_n and_o direction_n give_v in_o charge_n unto_o timothy_n can_v not_o be_v keep_v inviolable_a unto_o the_o end_n without_o a_o succession_n of_o such_o as_o shall_v have_v not_o only_o the_o like_a authority_n but_o also_o the_o same_o office_n until_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n the_o which_o be_v âlatly_o deny_v and_o can_v be_v fortify_v by_o that_o which_o follow_v scz_o that_o those_o commandment_n can_v not_o be_v perform_v in_o the_o person_n of_o timothy_n who_o be_v not_o to_o continue_v to_o the_o end_n see_v the_o member_n of_o his_o disjunction_n be_v insufficient_a when_o he_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v that_o those_o commandment_n must_v be_v perform_v either_o in_o timothees_n own_o person_n or_o in_o such_o as_o succeed_v he_o in_o the_o same_o function_n for_o the_o doctor_n can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o the_o commandment_n which_o christ_n give_v to_o his_o apostle_n math._n 28._o 19_o 20._o for_o preach_v and_o baptise_v be_v to_o be_v keep_v inviolable_a unto_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v perform_v by_o the_o apostle_n always_o in_o their_o own_o person_n or_o by_o such_o as_o succeed_v they_o in_o the_o apostolic_a function_n it_o be_v perform_v as_o all_o the_o world_n know_v by_o successor_n in_o a_o different_a function_n which_o have_v authority_n to_o do_v the_o same_o work_n though_o neither_o in_o the_o same_o office_n nor_o yet_o with_o that_o ample_a commission_n for_o the_o extent_n of_o their_o jurisdiction_n in_o like_a manner_n the_o refuter_fw-la say_v that_o the_o commandment_n give_v to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n for_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v continue_v in_o the_o church_n by_o presbyter_n which_o succeed_v they_o though_o in_o a_o differ_a office_n according_a to_o that_o ordinary_a course_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o his_o church_n thus_o much_o for_o s._n paul_n who_o the_o doctor_n now_o leave_v and_o crave_v help_v of_o mr._n calvin_n t._n c._n and_o other_o to_o conclude_v his_o purpose_n 84._o sect._n 11._o add_v sect_n 7._o pag_n 83._o 84._o scz_n that_o the_o
of_o the_o parish_n 2._o when_o the_o bishop_n or_o ecclesiastical_a syndics_n syndics_n judge_n shall_v give_v licence_n and_o authority_n for_o the_o receive_n of_o he_o into_o the_o congregation_n by_o the_o pastor_n be_v shall_v not_o receive_v he_o into_o the_o church_n but_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o congregation_n and_o 3._o not_o before_o he_o have_v witness_v his_o repentance_n to_o the_o congregation_n by_o confess_v and_o bewail_v his_o sin_n before_o they_o &_o crave_v âââdon_n both_o of_o god_n and_o they_o together_o with_o theââ_n favour_n for_o his_o recive_n in_o the_o which_o when_o the_o party_n have_v do_v the_o minister_n 4_o lie_v shall_v ask_v the_o congregation_n whether_o they_o will_v forgive_v he_o his_o fault_n and_o commend_v his_o cause_n by_o prayer_n unto_o god_n that_o he_o will_v show_v mercy_n to_o he_o and_o confirm_v that_o in_o heaven_n which_o they_o do_v on_o earth_n and_o the_o people_n answer_v thereto_o we_o will_v he_o shall_v again_o ask_v they_o whither_o they_o will_v receive_v he_o into_o their_o company_n and_o count_v he_o as_o a_o brother_n whereunto_o when_o they_o have_v answer_v we_o will_v then_o shall_v the_o minister_n absolve_v he_o and_o receive_v he_o into_o the_o church_n say_v after_o this_o manner_n i_o do_v here_o before_o this_o church_n the_o guide_n whereof_o be_v commit_v unto_o i_o absolve_v thou_o from_o the_o punishment_n of_o thy_o offence_n and_o from_o the_o bond_n of_o excommunication_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n the_o power_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o member_n of_o this_o church_n present_a and_o also_o of_o the_o ordinary_a ordinario_fw-la suffragante_fw-la and_o i_o do_v restore_v thou_o again_o to_o thy_o former_a place_n and_o full_a right_n in_o the_o church_n behold_v here_o the_o order_n prescribe_v by_o they_o for_o administration_n of_o this_o part_n of_o discipline_n and_o therein_o observe_v that_o the_o bishop_n or_o ecclesiastical_a judge_n have_v but_o a_o voice_n in_o it_o he_o be_v neither_o the_o doer_n nor_o the_o sole-doer_n but_o the_o minister_n and_o the_o senior_n or_o chief_a man_n of_o the_o parish_n and_o the_o congregation_n have_v their_o voice_n also_o and_o that_o as_o they_o can_v not_o do_v it_o with_o out_o the_o bishop_n so_o neither_o the_o bishop_n without_o they_o and_o thus_o far_o they_o seek_v to_o bring_v in_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n and_o do_v show_v their_o judgement_n to_o be_v direct_o against_o his_o doctrine_n for_o the_o bishop_n sole_a government_n as_o appear_v also_o by_o the_o former_a testimony_n cite_v out_o of_o the_o bishop_n book_n consider_v we_o now_o what_o the_o d._n say_v to_o the_o senior_n they_o speak_v of_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o by_o senior_n they_o ãâã_d not_o ecclesiastical_a officer_n because_o where_o they_o reckon_v up_o all_o ecclesiastical_a officer_n from_o the_o clerk_n to_o the_o church_n warden_n deacon_n minister_n etc._n etc._n they_o do_v not_o once_o mention_v senior_n or_o their_o office_n and_o thereupon_o conclude_v that_o by_o they_o they_o understand_v some_o of_o the_o principal_a householder_n in_o some_o place_n call_v vestry-man_n in_o some_o master_n of_o the_o parish_n in_o some_o ancients_n of_o the_o parish_n which_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n see_v the_o ref_o never_o say_v that_o by_o the_o senior_n with_o who_o they_o require_v the_o minister_n to_o consult_v they_o mean_v any_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a officer_n they_o establish_v whereof_o only_o they_o make_v mention_n in_o the_o chapter_n note_v in_o the_o doctor_n margin_n yet_o when_o in_o the_o place_n allege_v by_o the_o refuter_fw-la they_o all_o those_o officer_n notwithstanding_o prescribe_v the_o minister_n to_o take_v to_o they_o senior_n and_o without_o their_o counsel_n to_o do_v nothing_o in_o the_o the_o church_n business_n &_o to_o proceed_v with_o wicked_a person_n according_a to_o math._n 18_o and_o adjudge_v they_o worthy_a to_o be_v excommunicate_a and_o have_v get_v to_o approve_v it_o they_o must_v denounce_v it_o public_o in_o the_o congregation_n that_o therein_o so_o much_o as_o may_v be_v they_o may_v bring_v in_o the_o anncient_a discipline_n will_v not_o any_o man_n that_o have_v wit_n and_o honesty_n conclude_v that_o they_o acknowledge_v that_o of_o old_a time_n there_o be_v senior_n let_v the_o d._n call_v they_o what_o he_o will_v they_o call_v they_o senior_n who_o be_v join_v with_o the_o pastor_n of_o particular_a congregation_n in_o church_n government_n and_o that_o they_o so_o far_o as_o their_o commission_n and_o the_o law_n then_o establish_v will_v permit_v they_o out_o of_o the_o love_n they_o bear_v to_o that_o discipline_n seek_v to_o bring_v it_o in_o the_o d._n therefore_o want_v wit_n or_o honesty_n in_o so_o charge_v his_o refut_o the_o former_a we_o know_v he_o have_v the_o late_a the_o reader_n may_v see_v he_o want_v else_o will_v he_o never_o at_o his_o first_o meeting_n with_o this_o testimony_n charge_v his_o refuter_fw-la to_o be_v a_o egregious_a falsifyer_n to_o have_v produce_v forge_v allegation_n and_o when_o he_o be_v to_o take_v his_o leave_n of_o it_o will_v the_o reader_n to_o judge_v with_o what_o conscience_n that_o book_n be_v allege_v as_o if_o the_o refuter_fw-la against_o conscience_n have_v allege_v it_o but_o i_o will_v join_v with_o he_o in_o that_o request_n pray_v the_o reader_n in_o god_n fear_v so_o to_o do_v as_o also_o how_o well_o he_o have_v prove_v his_o refuter_fw-la in_o the_o allegation_n thereof_o to_o be_v as_o he_o charge_v he_o a_o egregious_a falsifyer_n and_o to_o have_v produce_v forge_v allegation_n and_o so_o proceed_v to_o the_o rest_n of_o those_o notorious_a untruth_n as_o he_o call_v they_o chap._n 4._o wherein_o the_o refuter_fw-la be_v discharge_v of_o the_o other_o notorious_a untruth_n charge_v upon_o he_o by_o the_o doctor_n the_o second_o notorious_a untruth_n lay_v to_o the_o refuter_n charge_v by_o 7._o sect._n 1._o ref_o pag._n 4._o d._n p._n 7._o the_o doctor_n be_v because_o he_o say_v that_o his_o dactrine_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o profifse_v profiss_v judgement_n of_o our_o worthy_a writer_n whitaker_n fulk_n &c._n &c._n who_o in_o their_o answer_n to_o the_o papist_n who_o plead_v for_o their_o hierarchy_n with_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o the_o d._n do_v for_o his_o do_v determine_v that_o the_o government_n our_o bishop_n exercise_n ever_o other_o minister_n be_v jure_fw-la humano_fw-la by_o the_o positive_a law_n of_o man_n only_o the_o which_o if_o the_o d._n say_v true_a be_v false_a and_o so_o the_o papist_n leave_v unanswered_a free_a hence_o arise_v this_o second_o notorious_a untruth_n but_o how_o do_v m._n d._n make_v it_o appear_v so_o 1._o can_v he_o deny_v the_o doctrine_n in_o his_o sermon_n to_o be_v clean_o contrary_a to_o their_o judgement_n that_o hold_v the_o government_n our_o bishop_n exercise_n over_o other_o minister_n to_o be_v give_v they_o jure_fw-la humano_fw-la by_o the_o positive_a law_n of_o man_n only_o no_o he_o dare_v not_o contradict_v his_o refuter_fw-la in_o this_o point_n what_o then_o 2._o do_v he_o deny_v that_o the_o papist_n do_v plead_v for_o their_o hierarchy_n with_o the_o same_o reason_n that_o he_o do_v for_o we_o no_o he_o only_o indeavour_v to_o persuade_v that_o his_o argument_n be_v good_a though_o they_o be_v naught_o 3._o but_o do_v not_o our_o worthy_a writer_n those_o the_o refuter_fw-la name_v with_o other_o in_o their_o answer_n to_o the_o papist_n that_o allege_v the_o same_o reason_n determine_v as_o the_o refuter_fw-la say_v that_o the_o government_n which_o our_o bishop_n exercise_n over_o other_o minister_n be_v jure_fw-la humano_fw-la not_o by_o divine_a right_n but_o by_o the_o positive_a law_n of_o man_n only_o this_o be_v so_o evident_a a_o truth_n that_o the_o d._n neither_o do_v nor_o can_v refel_v it_o where_o then_o be_v that_o notorious_a untruth_n wherewith_o he_o charge_v his_o refuter_fw-la by_o reason_n of_o those_o word_n be_v not_o he_o rather_o a_o notorious_a slanderer_n in_o deliver_v slanderer_n the_o d._n be_v the_o slanderer_n such_o a_o accusation_n as_o he_o can_v justify_v judge_n christian_n reader_n when_o thou_o have_v hear_v his_o answer_n first_o say_v he_o the_o popish_a opinion_n be_v far_o different_a from_o that_o which_o i_o hold_v for_o they_o hold_v the_o order_n and_o superiority_n of_o bishop_n to_o be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la imply_v thereby_o a_o perpetual_a necessity_n thereof_o in_o so_o much_o that_o where_o bishop_n be_v not_o to_o ordain_v they_o think_v there_o can_v be_v no_o minister_n nor_o priest_n &_o consequent_o no_o church_n i_o hold_v otherwise_o as_o the_o ref_o himself_o acknowknowledge_v p._n 90_o in_o fine_a if_o therefore_o the_o papist_n do_v bring_v the_o like_a argument_n to_o prove_v their_o
opinion_n which_o be_v so_o unlike_a to_o i_o nothing_o hinder_v but_o my_o argument_n may_v be_v good_a though_o they_o be_v naught_o for_o those_o argument_n which_o demonstrative_o prove_v the_o episcopal_a function_n to_o be_v of_o apostolical_a institution_n do_v not_o straitewayes_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v divini_fw-la juris_fw-la wherefore_o my_o opinion_n be_v so_o far_o different_a from_o the_o popish_a conceit_n who_o see_v not_o that_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o divine_n which_o be_v oppose_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v not_o opposue_v to_o i_o for_o though_o they_o hold_v not_o the_o episcopal_a function_n to_o be_v enjoin_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la as_o be_v perpetual_o necessary_a yet_o what_o man_n of_o sound_a learning_n do_v or_o dare_v deny_v that_o the_o first_o bishop_n be_v ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n thus_o we_o see_v how_o the_o d._n have_v lead_v we_o along_o but_o notwithstanding_o the_o confidence_n of_o his_o speech_n observe_v we_o the_o extreme_a poverty_n of_o his_o cause_n be_v he_o not_o near_o drive_v think_v you_o when_o to_o prove_v his_o great_a difference_n between_o his_o opinion_n and_o the_o papist_n he_o be_v fain_o to_o fly_v to_o the_o refuter_n acknowledgement_n of_o it_o in_o that_o 90._o page_n where_o with_o the_o same_o breath_n he_o challenge_v he_o to_o be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o seeminge_v at_o least_o to_o unsay_v that_o in_o one_o place_n which_o he_o have_v say_v in_o another_o do_v he_o not_o remember_v that_o he_o have_v often_o charge_v his_o refuter_fw-la to_o affirm_v throughout_o his_o answer_n that_o he_o hold_v the_o episcopal_a function_n to_o be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la and_o to_o imply_v a_o perpetual_a necessity_n thereof_o how_o then_o do_v the_o refuters_n acknowledgement_n prove_v that_o the_o popish_a opinion_n be_v far_o different_a from_o he_o do_v it_o not_o rather_o prove_v that_o in_o this_o very_a point_n wherein_o he_o lay_v the_o main_n difference_n he_o he_o be_v full_o knit_v unto_o they_o although_o forget_v himself_o as_o many_o papist_n also_o do_v in_o their_o discourse_n he_o contradict_v at_o one_o time_n what_o he_o maintain_v at_o a_o other_o but_o to_o let_v the_o world_n see_v how_o he_o jump_v with_o the_o papist_n in_o this_o matter_n i_o will_v relate_v his_o opinion_n not_o in_o his_o ref_o word_n but_o in_o his_o own_o the_o function_n &_o authority_n say_v he_o serm_n p._n 79_o which_o tim._n and_o t_o it_o have_v at_o ephesus_n and_o in_o crete_n consist_v special_o in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n &_o jurisdiction_n be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n as_o be_v ordinary_a &_o perpetual_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o well-being_n but_o also_o for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o church_n for_o if_o while_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o live_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v substitute_v in_o the_o church_n already_o plant_v such_o as_o timothy_n and_o titus_n furnish_v with_o episcopal_a power_n then_o much_o more_o after_o their_o decease_n have_v the_o church_n need_v of_o such_o governor_n loe_o here_o his_o own_o word_n now_o who_o see_v not_o that_o they_o close_o imply_v that_o which_o he_o say_v the_o papist_n do_v more_o impudent_o affirm_v the_o d._n close_o impli_v what_o the_o papist_n impudent_o affirm_v affirm_v viz_o that_o where_o bishop_n be_v not_o to_o ordain_v there_o can_v be_v no_o minister_n or_o priest_n and_o consequent_o no_o church_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o friend_n of_o the_o do._n who_o pleadinge_n the_o same_o cause_n blush_v not_o among_o other_o proposition_n deliver_v to_o disgace_z the_o presbyterian_a discipline_n and_o the_o mainteyner_n thereof_o to_o affirm_v in_o plain_a term_n that_o all_o minister_n create_v and_o make_v by_o the_o new_a presbytery_n be_v mere_a laye-person_n and_o can_v lawful_o either_o preach_v god_n word_n or_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n so_o say_v tho_o bell_n in_o his_o regiment_n of_o the_o church_n page_n 136_o and_o then_o add_v this_o be_v already_o prove_v and_o a_o little_a afer_fw-la conclude_v with_o jeroms_n word_n often_o object_v by_o the_o papist_n against_o the_o protestant_n ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la sacerdotem_fw-la where_o there_o it_o no_o priest_n or_o minister_n there_o can_v be_v no_o church_n but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o d._n see_v all_o the_o reason_n he_o here_o bring_v to_o maintain_v his_o accusation_n be_v from_o the_o difference_n of_o opinion_n betwixt_o the_o papist_n and_o he_o concern_v the_o authority_n of_o bishop_n it_o be_v make_v evident_a that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o difference_n as_o he_o pretend_v it_o will_v necessary_o follow_v that_o this_o second_o untruth_n how_o notorious_a soever_o here_o charge_v upon_o his_o refuter_fw-la must_v be_v discharge_v upon_o himself_o for_o it_o be_v a_o truth_n so_o himself_o the_o 2._o untruth_n which_o the_o d._n charge_v upon_o the_o ref._n return_v to_o himself_o evident_a as_o the_o d._n can_v deny_v it_o that_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o divine_n be_v whole_o opposite_a to_o he_o in_o that_o they_o hold_v the_o call_n of_o l._n bishop_n to_o be_v neither_o divini_fw-la nor_o apostolici_fw-la juris_fw-la neither_o as_o the_o papist_n nor_o as_o the_o d._n hold_v they_o if_o he_o do_v as_o he_o say_v so_o far_o differ_v from_o they_o and_o put_v case_n the_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o papist_n and_o he_o be_v such_o as_o he_o say_v yet_o what_o be_v that_o to_o the_o point_n in_o question_n i_o mean_v to_o prove_v the_o refuter_n assertion_n to_o be_v a_o notorious_a untruth_n nothing_o at_o all_o the_o d._n in_o deed_n his_o opinion_n be_v so_o different_a as_o he_o faith_n from_o the_o popish_a conceit_n ask_v who_o it_o be_v that_o see_v not_o that_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o divine_n oppose_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o papist_n be_v not_o opposite_a to_o he_o and_o i_o may_v ask_v he_o what_o mean_v he_o to_o ask_v that_o question_n may_v not_o the_o d_o yea_o do_v he_o not_o agree_v with_o the_o papist_n in_o affirminge_v the_o episcopal_a function_n to_o be_v divini_fw-la juris_fw-la thereby_o intend_v that_o it_o be_v a_o divine_a and_o not_o a_o humane_a ordinance_n though_o he_o shall_v differ_v from_o they_o in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o perpetual_a and_o immutable_a necessity_n of_o the_o function_n and_o may_v not_o our_o worthy_a writer_n of_o who_o the_o refuter_fw-la speak_v yea_o can_v the_o doctor_n show_v that_o they_o do_v not_o contradict_v the_o papist_n aswell_o in_o the_o former_a point_n as_o in_o the_o late_a will_v he_o say_v and_o can_v he_o prove_v that_o they_o determine_v such_o bishop_n only_o as_o have_v such_o a_o call_n as_o the_o papist_n maintain_v to_o be_v jure_fw-la humano_fw-la by_o the_o positive_a law_n of_o man_n only_o do_v they_o not_o general_o conclude_v and_o determine_v the_o matter_n of_o all_o bishop_n whatsoever_o that_o be_v superior_a to_o other_o minister_n or_o can_v they_o hold_v which_o the_o ref._n say_v they_o do_v and_o the_o d._n do_v not_o deny_v that_o the_o government_n our_o bishop_n exercise_n over_o other_o minister_n be_v jure_fw-la humano_fw-la only_a and_o yet_o hold_v it_o a_o apostolical_a ordinance_n also_o or_o can_v they_o hold_v that_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o there_o be_v a_o perpetual_a necessity_n thereof_o it_o be_v only_o jure_fw-la humano_fw-la and_o that_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o be_v not_o perpetual_a but_o so_o as_o the_o church_n may_v be_v a_o church_n without_o it_o it_o be_v a_o apostolical_a and_o a_o divine_a ordinance_n or_o do_v our_o writer_n therefore_o determine_v against_o the_o papist_n that_o the_o government_n aforesaid_a be_v only_o jure_fw-la humano_fw-la because_o they_o defend_v it_o to_o be_v perpetual_o necessary_a or_o do_v they_o determine_v only_o against_o those_o reason_n of_o the_o papist_n by_o which_o they_o prove_v this_o government_n to_o be_v perpetual_o necessary_a will_v the_o d._n affirm_v this_o be_v not_o the_o contrary_a to_o all_o this_o most_o evident_a to_o they_o that_o read_v their_o writing_n do_v they_o not_o plain_o and_o direct_o without_o any_o relation_n to_o this_o or_o that_o conceit_n conclude_v against_o all_o those_o reason_n which_o papist_n bring_v that_o the_o government_n of_o bishop_n over_o other_o minister_n be_v not_o a_o ordinance_n divine_a or_o apostolical_a but_o humane_a only_o direct_o contrary_a to_o the_o d._n conclusion_n let_v his_o reason_n be_v what_o they_o be_v may_v and_o it_o be_v worth_a the_o know_v what_o reason_n those_o be_v that_o demonstrative_o prove_v as_o he_o say_v the_o episcopal_a function_n to_o be_v of_o apostolical_a institution_n &_o yet_o prove_v it_o not_o to_o be_v divini_fw-la juris_fw-la and_o of_o perpetual_a necessity_n as_o also_o what_o worthy_a
ordination_n perform_v by_o minister_n that_o be_v no_o bishop_n do_v evident_o show_v it_o the_o truth_n be_v say_v he_o where_o minister_n may_v be_v have_v none_o but_o minister_n ought_v to_o baptise_v and_o where_o bishop_n may_v be_v have_v none_o but_o bishop_n ought_v to_o ordâyn_v but_o though_o neither_o aught_o to_o be_v do_v yet_o be_v do_v the_o former_a by_o other_o christian_n in_o want_n of_o a_o minister_n the_o late_a by_o other_o minister_n in_o defect_n of_o a_o bishop_n as_o the_o one_o so_o the_o other_o also_o be_v of_o force_n the_o church_n receive_v the_o party_n baptize_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a and_o the_o party_n ordâyned_v as_o a_o lawful_a minister_n now_o if_o this_o be_v a_o truth_n say_v i_o then_o there_o must_v be_v a_o truth_n acknowledge_v also_o in_o these_o conclusion_n minister_n the_o d._n again_o say_v as_o much_o for_o the_o per_fw-mi petuitie_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n as_o of_o the_o function_n of_o other_o minister_n that_o follow_v viz._n that_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o ordinary_a church-government_n as_o the_o right_n of_o administer_a baptism_n be_v a_o peculiar_a prerogative_n of_o the_o ministerial_a function_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n so_o eodem_fw-la jure_fw-la even_o by_o the_o same_o law_n the_o right_a of_o ordination_n be_v peculiar_a to_o the_o bishop_n and_o as_o all_o church_n under_o heaven_n till_o the_o come_n of_o christ_n to_o judgement_n be_v bind_v to_o strive_v for_o the_o establish_n &_o retain_v of_o that_o ministry_n which_o god_n have_v authorize_v to_o administer_v baptism_n so_o be_v all_o church_n by_o a_o like_a band_n tie_v to_o contend_v for_o the_o episcopal_a function_n which_o have_v right_a to_o ordain_v and_o consequent_o the_o call_n of_o bishop_n for_o ordain_v be_v as_o general_o perpetual_o and_o immutablie_o necessary_a as_o the_o office_n of_o other_o minister_n be_v for_o the_o work_n of_o baptism_n i_o add_v that_o in_o the_o d._n opinion_n there_o be_v as_o perpetual_a and_o immutable_a a_o necessity_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n for_o the_o order_n of_o every_o church_n as_o there_o be_v in_o the_o opinion_n of_o many_o very_a judicious_a divine_n of_o wine_n for_o the_o holy_a and_o pure_a administration_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n for_o whereas_o he_o allow_v not_o of_o any_o other_o form_n of_o church-governement_n then_o by_o bishop_n unless_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n where_o orthodoxal_a bishop_n can_v be_v have_v and_o that_o because_o any_o government_n whatsoever_o be_v better_o than_o none_o at_o all_o serm_n pag._n 97_o in_o the_o like_a necessity_n where_o wine_n can_v be_v have_v they_o judge_v it_o better_a to_o take_v in_o stead_n of_o wine_n water_n or_o any_o other_o kind_n of_o drink_n usual_a in_o such_o place_n then_o whole_o to_o neglect_v the_o lord_n sacrament_n or_o to_o maim_v it_o by_o a_o half_a administration_n in_o one_o only_a element_n see_v polani_n syntag._n col._n 3213._o wherefore_o as_o their_o allowance_n of_o a_o change_n in_o the_o outward_a element_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n be_v limit_v to_o such_o a_o extraordinary_a case_n do_v rather_o support_v then_o contradict_v their_o assertion_n that_o the_o church_n have_v not_o liberty_n to_o refuse_v wine_n or_o to_o prefer_v any_o other_o element_n before_o it_o the_o d._n his_o excuse_v other_o reform_a church_n for_o enterteyn_a a_o presbyterial_a aristocracy_n in_o stead_n of_o a_o episcopal_a monarchy_n only_o in_o such_o a_o case_n of_o necessity_n as_o he_o pretend_v may_v give_v his_o refuter_fw-la just_a occasion_n to_o think_v though_o he_o affirm_v no_o such_o mattet_n that_o he_o hold_v the_o episcopal_a government_n to_o be_v divini_fw-la juris_fw-la thereby_o intend_v that_o all_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o prefer_v it_o aswell_o in_o their_o endeavour_n as_o in_o their_o judgement_n before_o 167._o sect._n 6._o add_v serm_n p._n 79._o &_o defence_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 100_o 146._o 148._o and_o 167._o any_o other_o form_n of_o government_n whatsoever_o but_o there_o be_v a_o high_a pitch_n of_o the_o necessity_n of_o this_o function_n as_o may_v appear_v by_o some_o word_n that_o slip_v from_o the_o d._n in_o the_o pen_n of_o his_o sermon_n pag._n 79._o to_o wit_n that_o the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v as_o be_v assign_v to_o certain_a church_n be_v ordinary_a and_o perpetual_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o welbeing_n but_o also_o for_o the_o very_o church_n the_o d._n do_v hold_v the_o episcopal_a function_n perpetual_o necessary_a for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n for_o from_o hence_o it_o follow_v by_o good_a consequence_n as_o his_o refuter_fw-la right_o gather_v answer_v pag._n 145_o and_o 138._o that_o see_v in_o his_o judgement_n the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o they_o have_v be_v episcopal_a and_o diocesan_n such_o as_o we_o be_v now_o therefore_o also_o in_o his_o judgement_n the_o episcopal_a power_n or_o government_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n be_v perpetual_o necessary_a for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n now_o herewith_o the_o doctor_n be_v high_o offend_v and_o charge_v he_o with_o malice_n want_v of_o judgement_n and_o with_o ignorant_a mistake_n or_o wilful_a deprave_v of_o his_o say_n and_o that_o against_o sense_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 146._o 148._o &_o 167._o a_o great_a charge_n in_o deed_n but_o how_o do_v he_o avoid_v the_o consequence_n object_v for_o sooth_n to_o explain_v his_o meaning_n he_o dismember_v his_o own_o speech_n &_o cut_v asunder_o the_o knot_n which_o with_o his_o own_o tongue_n and_o pen_n he_o have_v knit_v for_o whereas_o before_o he_o speak_v joint_o as_o of_o one_o thing_n express_v by_o two_o word_n of_o their_o function_n and_o authority_n that_o it_o be_v ordinary_a and_o ââame_n the_o doct._n play_v fast_o and_o loose_a ti_v &_o unti_v but_o every_o one_o may_v see_v the_o sleight_n to_o his_o ââame_n perpetual_o necessary_a now_o to_o show_v his_o skill_n in_o play_v fast_o and_o loose_a at_o his_o pleasure_n he_o say_v pag._n 100_o and_o 147._o he_o mean_v that_o their_o function_n be_v ordinary_a and_o their_o authority_n be_v perpetual_o necessary_a but_o as_o slippery_a as_o he_o be_v his_o refuter_fw-la will_v not_o suffer_v he_o thus_o to_o slip_v his_o neck_n out_o of_o the_o collar_n all_o his_o wit_n and_o learning_n can_v neither_o unloose_v nor_o cut_v a_o sunder_o that_o chain_n which_o bind_v he_o to_o a_o gross_a absurdity_n his_o word_n serm_n pag._n 79_o be_v these_o the_o function_n &_o authority_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v as_o be_v assign_v to_o certain_a church_n viz._n of_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n consist_v special_o in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n as_o be_v ordinary_a and_o perpetual_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o wellbeinge_n but_o also_o for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n if_o the_o doctor_n have_v mean_v so_o to_o divide_v the_o late_a part_n of_o his_o speech_n as_o he_o will_v now_o persuade_v what_o mean_v he_o not_o to_o discover_v his_o meaning_n plain_o it_o have_v be_v easy_a for_o he_o to_o have_v disjoin_v their_o function_n from_o their_o authority_n in_o his_o whole_a speech_n on_o this_o manner_n q._n d._n but_o neither_o be_v the_o function_n which_o tim._n and_o tit._n have_v at_o ephesus_n and_o in_o crete_n to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n as_o be_v ordinary_a neither_o be_v their_o authority_n to_o die_v with_o they_o as_o be_v perpetual_o necessary_a etc._n etc._n therefore_o have_v he_o so_o mean_v in_o deed_n and_o truth_n as_o he_o now_o profess_v since_o there_o want_v not_o skill_n there_o must_v needs_o be_v in_o he_o a_o want_n of_o will_n to_o speak_v plain_o unto_o the_o capacity_n of_o his_o reader_n abhor_v the_o doct._n be_v guilty_a of_o that_o imputation_n which_o he_o profess_v to_o abhor_v so_o that_o he_o stand_v here_o guilty_a of_o that_o âoul_a imputation_n which_o elsewhere_o he_o profess_v to_o abhor_v lib._n 2._o pag._n 52._o viz._n a_o desire_n and_o intent_n of_o dazzle_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o simple_a i_o may_v say_v the_o eye_n of_o all_o even_a the_o most_o judicious_a as_o all_o may_v see_v that_o read_v with_o a_o single_a eye_n and_o weigh_v with_o a_o upright_a hand_n what_o he_o have_v write_v but_o to_o speak_v what_o i_o think_v he_o rather_o beli_v his_o own_o heart_n in_o hart_n the_o d._n in_o all_o likelihood_n beli_v his_o own_o hart_n say_v now_o that_o he_o then_o mean_v that_o which_o he_o never_o dream_v of_o till_o he_o have_v set_v his_o wit_n a_o work_n to_o find_v out_o some_o fly_n
evasion_n to_o avoid_v if_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o perpetual_a necessity_n which_o his_o word_n do_v equal_o throw_v upon_o the_o function_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n aswell_o as_o on_o their_o authority_n for_o 1._o if_o he_o have_v cast_v but_o one_o cie_n upon_o the_o proposition_n of_o that_o brave_a syllogism_n whereunto_o the_o former_a sentence_n be_v fit_v as_o the_o assumption_n he_o may_v have_v observe_v that_o the_o word_n authority_n be_v superfluous_a &_o idle_o insert_v in_o the_o late_a see_v it_o be_v whole_o omit_v in_o the_o former_a the_o proposition_n of_o his_o argument_n be_v this_o the_o suppose_a evangelisticall_a function_n he_o say_v not_o evangelisticall_a function_n and_o authority_n but_o evangel_n function_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v to_o ând_v with_o their_o person_n and_o admit_v no_o succession_n be_v both_o extraordinary_a and_o temporary_a wherefore_o to_o make_v the_o assumption_n suitable_a to_o this_o proposition_n he_o shall_v have_v say_v not_o as_o he_o then_o do_v and_o still_o do_v the_o function_n and_o authority_n but_o the_o function_n which_o they_o have_v as_o be_v assign_v to_o certain_a church_n be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n and_o they_o the_o word_n follow_v must_v of_o necessity_n be_v carry_v also_o to_o their_o function_n only_o q._n d._n their_o function_n be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n because_o it_o be_v both_o ordinary_a and_o perpetual_o necessary_a etc._n etc._n and_o unless_o he_o will_v yield_v to_o this_o construction_n of_o his_o assumption_n i_o mean_v either_o to_o blot_v out_o the_o word_n authority_n or_o at_o least_o to_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o usurer_n those_o two_o word_n function_n and_o authority_n as_o synonima_n to_o express_v one_o only_a thing_n to_o wit_n their_o office_n or_o function_n he_o will_v be_v enforce_v evil_n if_o the_o d._n seek_v to_o avoid_v one_o he_o fall_v into_o another_o evil_n to_o lie_v down_o under_o this_o foul_a imputation_n also_o viz._n that_o he_o do_v sophisticate_a and_o by_o four_o term_n in_o stead_n of_o three_o utter_o mar_v the_o frame_n of_o his_o suppose_a blameless_a syllogism_n 2._o moreover_o if_o he_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o peruse_v his_o defense_n lib._n 4._o pag._n 97_o 98._o he_o may_v perceive_v that_o as_o his_o purpose_n be_v by_o a_o new_a supply_n of_o argument_n as_o he_o say_v to_o prove_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v bishop_n so_o his_o main_a argument_n there_o set_v down_o conclude_v the_o very_a function_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n to_o be_v ordinary_a and_o episcopal_a because_o it_o be_v not_o extraordinary_a and_o evangelicall_n for_o although_o to_o conform_v his_o first_o argument_n to_o his_o prosyllogisââes_n that_o follow_v he_o couple_v function_n and_o authority_n together_o yet_o the_o frame_n of_o his_o word_n do_v show_v that_o by_o both_o term_n he_o understandoth_a one_o thing_n only_o to_o wit_n their_o proper_a function_n or_o office_n which_o be_v as_o he_o confess_v the_o only_a thing_n now_o in_o question_n otherwise_o have_v say_v in_o the_o proposition_n that_o their_o function_n and_o authority_n be_v either_o extraordinary_a and_o evangelisticall_a or_o ordinary_a and_o episcopal_a he_o will_v never_o have_v set_v down_o the_o assumption_n and_o conclusion_n so_o as_o he_o do_v but_o it_o be_v not_o extraordinary_a and_o evangelical_a therefore_o ordinary_a and_o episcopal_a for_o neither_o grammar_n noâ_n logic_n disjunction_n neither_o grammar_n nor_o logic_n will_v endure_v the_o d._n disjunction_n will_v permit_v he_o under_o this_o one_o word_n it_o to_o comprehend_v two_o thing_n so_o distinct_a as_o he_o now_o take_v function_n and_o authority_n to_o be_v when_o he_o affirm_v the_o one_o &_o deni_v the_o other_o to_o be_v perpetuallye_o necessary_a 3._o but_o if_o he_o will_v needs_o begin_v with_o that_o disjunction_n with_o which_o he_o end_v he_o shall_v fall_v into_o a_o twofolde_a absurdity_n which_o he_o can_v avoid_v viz._n a_o untoward_a lay_v down_o of_o the_o question_n in_o the_o beginning_n and_o a_o shameless_a beg_n of_o the_o question_n in_o the_o end_n for_o neither_o do_v they_o hold_v the_o function_n only_o of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n to_o be_v ordinary_a or_o their_o authority_n only_o to_o be_v episcopal_a neither_o do_v the_o disciplinarian_o teach_v their_o function_n only_o to_o be_v extraordinary_a and_o their_o authority_n only_o to_o be_v evangelical_a but_o rather_o affirm_v their_o function_n to_o be_v both_o extraordinary_a and_o evangelical_a as_o in_o the_o proposition_n of_o his_o first_o syllogism_n he_o confess_v and_o as_o for_o their_o authority_n understand_v thereby_o as_o the_o doctor_n do_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o power_n to_o ordain_v and_o to_o exercise_v a_o public_a spiritual_a jurisdiction_n they_o do_v no_o where_n affirm_v it_o to_o be_v either_o extraordinary_a or_o proper_a to_o a_o evangelist_n yea_o the_o doctor_n acknowledge_v pag._n 84._o and_o 100_o that_o his_o refuter_fw-la grant_v that_o other_o be_v to_o succ_v timothy_n and_o titus_n in_o the_o authority_n which_o they_o have_v but_o not_o in_o their_o office_n and_o that_o their_o authority_n though_o not_o their_o function_n be_v perpetual_o necessary_a wherefore_o if_o he_o take_v not_o authority_n and_o function_n for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n or_o at_o least_o restrain_v authority_n to_o that_o peculiar_a power_n which_o distinguish_v their_o function_n from_o all_o other_o ministerial_a calling_n he_o have_v apparent_o falsify_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n and_o wââ_n be_v worse_o in_o the_o wind_a up_o of_o his_o cause_n the_o d._n falsine_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n the_o doct._n bewray_v the_o beggary_n or_o his_o cause_n dispute_n bewray_v the_o extreme_a beggary_n of_o his_o cause_n when_o he_o prove_v their_o function_n to_o be_v ordinary_a because_o it_o be_v ordinary_a for_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o first_o syllogism_n p._n 98._o affirm_v the_o function_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n to_o be_v ordinary_a his_o medius_fw-la terminus_fw-la to_o prove_v it_o be_v this_o it_o be_v not_o extraordinary_a which_o to_o confirm_v he_o say_v that_o their_o function_n be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n aâd_v therefore_o be_v not_o extraordinary_a and_o to_o prove_v the_o antecedent_n he_o argue_v thus_o their_o function_n be_v ordinary_a and_o therefore_o be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n so_o that_o his_o whole_a reasoning-commeth_a to_o this_o issue_n their_o function_n be_v ordinary_a and_o therefore_o it_o be_v ordinary_a to_o amend_v all_o these_o defaulte_n since_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o in_o his_o main_a conclusion_n he_o affirm_v their_o function_n to_o be_v both_o ordinary_a and_o episcopal_a as_o before_o i_o show_v the_o word_n authority_n to_o be_v superflous_a so_o it_o follow_v from_o thing_n before_o deliver_v that_o the_o word_n ordinary_a in_o that_o prosyllogisme_n which_o he_o lay_v down_o pag._n 99_o &_o 100_o so_o as_o he_o receive_v it_o from_o his_o refuter_fw-la be_v also_o superfluous_a and_o fit_a to_o be_v expunge_v that_o the_o syllogism_n may_v run_v currant_n in_o this_o manner_n that_o function_n which_o be_v perpetual_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o well-being_n but_o also_o for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o the_o person_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n but_o the_o function_n which_o they_o have_v when_o they_o be_v assign_v to_o certain_a church_n be_v perpetual_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o wellbeinge_a but_o also_o for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n therefore_o the_o function_n which_o they_o have_v be_v so_o assign_v be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n wherefore_o the_o refuter_fw-la have_v not_o wrong_v the_o doc._n in_o charge_v many_o the_o refut_o wrong_v not_o the_o d._n burr_n the_o d._n wrong_v himself_o when_o to_o avoid_v one_o absurdity_n he_o throw_v himself_o into_o many_o he_o to_o asfirme_v that_o the_o episcopal_a power_n or_o function_n be_v perpetual_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o well_o be_v but_o for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n the_o d._n rather_o have_v wrong_v himself_o in_o that_o while_o he_o labour_v to_o avoid_v the_o rock_n of_o this_o one_o absurdity_n he_o throw_v himself_o into_o the_o gulf_n of_o many_o other_o and_o to_o he_o more_o fit_o agree_v that_o which_o without_o cause_n he_o say_v of_o his_o refuter_fw-la pa._n 99_o he_o rove_v and_o rave_v as_o man_n use_v to_o do_v who_o be_v at_o a_o nonplus_n will_v fain_o seem_v to_o answer_v somewhat_o to_o conclude_v then_o this_o point_n see_v the_o direction_n of_o the_o
answer_n be_v frivolous_a or_o a_o beg_n of_o the_o question_n of_o the_o question_n if_o he_o speak_v of_o such_o a_o judicial_a licens_v or_o silence_v as_o bishop_n in_o these_o day_n exercise_n over_o other_o minister_n in_o their_o diocese_n but_o he_o will_v both_o prove_v that_o these_o false_a teacher_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o angel_n or_o bishop_n &_o remove_v that_o which_o his_o refuter_fw-la object_v to_o the_o contrary_n the_o late_a he_o attempt_v in_o this_o manner_n if_o they_o be_v not_o presbyter_n he_o shall_v say_v part_n of_o the_o presbytery_n of_o that_o church_n because_o they_o call_v themselves_o apostles_n belike_o they_o be_v better_a man_n be_v it_o not_o then_o against_o sense_n to_o deny_v that_o presbyter_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o bishop_n because_o he_o imagine_v these_o who_o be_v subject_a to_o their_o censure_n be_v better_a man_n be_v this_o the_o refuter_n imagination_n or_o be_v not_o rather_o the_o d._n conclusion_n ground_v upon_o his_o own_o untruth_n the_o d._n can_v uphold_v his_o cause_n but_o by_o untruth_n imagination_n why_o then_o may_v i_o not_o return_v he_o his_o own_o word_n p._n 124_o be_v the_o d._n conscience_n no_o better_o than_o still_o to_o father_n upon_o the_o ref_o untruth_n for_o his_o own_o advantage_n bewray_v he_o not_o thereby_o what_o a_o cause_n he_o maintain_v that_o can_v be_v uphold_v but_o by_o forgery_n the_o refuter_fw-la to_o make_v good_a his_o denial_n of_o that_o which_o the_o d._n presuppose_v in_o the_o consequence_n of_o his_o reason_n uz._n that_o the_o false_a apostle_n be_v presbyter_n and_o part_n of_o the_o angel_n presbytery_n affirm_v that_o it_o be_v against_o sense_n to_o imagine_v that_o any_o such_o will_v assume_v to_o themselves_o the_o name_n and_o pre-eminence_n of_o apostle_n and_o that_o any_o man_n reason_n will_v rather_o give_v he_o that_o they_o be_v person_n that_o come_v from_o some_o other_o place_n add_v herunto_o that_o if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o the_o ephesian_a clergy_n and_o so_o know_v to_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o have_v embrace_v a_o ordinary_a call_n and_o settle_a charge_n among_o they_o how_o shall_v they_o with_o any_o colour_n persuade_v the_o same_o people_n to_o receive_v they_o for_o the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n doubtless_o the_o very_a consideration_n of_o the_o know_a difference_n betwixt_o the_o extraordinary_a ministry_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o ordinary_a function_n of_o presbyter_n may_v have_v be_v sufficient_a without_o any_o further_a search_n to_o discover_v their_o lie_a forgery_n which_o be_v know_v to_o have_v place_n among_o the_o latter_a shall_v usurp_v the_o name_n &_o authority_n of_o the_o former_a but_o the_o text_n say_v apoc._n 2._o 2._o they_o be_v find_v to_o be_v liar_n by_o the_o wise_a and_o diligent_a care_n of_o the_o angel_n who_o examine_v or_o try_v they_o it_o be_v therefore_o more_o probable_a that_o they_o be_v rather_o of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o wander_a prophet_n which_o as_o grievous_a wolf_n from_o without_o enter_v in_o to_o devour_v then_o of_o those_o perverse_a teacher_n which_o spring_v up_o among_o they_o do_v draw_v disciple_n after_o they_o see_v aretius_n beza_n and_o marlorat_n in_o apoc._n 2._o 2._o and_o touch_v the_o false_a prophetess_n âe_v zabell_n see_v she_o be_v express_o say_v to_o be_v a_o woman_n though_o good_a interpreter_n do_v gather_v from_o hence_o that_o woman_n be_v suffer_v to_o teach_v public_o in_o that_o church_n see_v marlorat_n and_o mr_n perkins_n upon_o apoc._n 2._o 20._o yet_o be_v it_o too_o gross_a to_o imagine_v that_o any_o woman_n be_v admit_v to_o the_o office_n of_o teacher_n or_o to_o the_o charge_n of_o presbyter_n and_o though_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o they_o be_v man_n not_o woman_n which_o be_v decipher_v by_o the_o name_n of_o that_o woman_n jezabell_n yet_o the_o very_a name_n argue_v their_o greatness_n &_o their_o prevayl_v by_o their_o subtle_a persuasion_n no_o less_o than_o jezabel_n do_v by_o her_o command_a power_n to_o draw_v many_o un_fw-fr to_o their_o wicked_a way_n and_o the_o title_n of_o a_o prophetess_n import_v yâ_z they_o boast_a of_o a_o immediate_a call_n &_o of_o extraordinary_a revelation_n neither_o do_v the_o doctor_n contradict_v this_o only_o he_o say_v if_o they_o trifle_v the_o d._n trifle_v be_v not_o presbyter_n belike_o they_o be_v better_a man_n a_o frivolous_a speech_n and_o a_o unlikely_a consequence_n for_o what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o that_o they_o be_v better_a man_n see_v some_o of_o they_o be_v find_v to_o be_v liar_n in_o say_v they_o be_v apostle_n or_o how_o do_v the_o denial_n of_o this_o that_o they_o be_v part_n of_o the_o stand_a presbytery_n argue_v that_o they_o be_v no_o presbyter_n at_o all_o but_o say_v they_o be_v of_o a_o high_a calling_n to_o wit_n evangelist_n or_o fellow-helper_n sometime_o to_o the_o apostle_n yet_o now_o apostate_n from_o the_o faith_n as_o be_v demas_n and_o some_o other_o what_o will_v this_o advantage_n the_o d._n cause_n for_o soothe_v because_o himself_o imagine_v that_o these_o who_o be_v better_a man_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n censure_n therefore_o he_o deem_v it_o against_o sense_n to_o deny_v that_o presbyter_n be_v subject_a to_o his_o censure_n to_o come_v then_o at_o length_n to_o that_o which_o he_o first_o propose_v the_o reason_n i_o mean_v which_o he_o urge_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o false_a apostle_n &_o jezabel_n the_o false_a prophetess_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n wherein_o they_o usurp_a authority_n to_o teach_v he_o say_v if_o they_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o they_o why_o be_v the_o one_o commend_v for_o exercise_v authority_n over_o they_o and_o the_o other_o reprove_v for_o suffer_v they_o for_o answer_v it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o ask_v why_o he_o assume_v for_o a_o apparent_a truth_n ââbeggeth_v yet_o the_o ââbeggeth_v that_o which_o be_v rather_o apparent_o false_a viz._n that_o the_o angel_n of_o ephesus_n be_v commend_v for_o exercise_v authority_n over_o the_o false_a apostle_n and_o why_o he_o pray_v suppose_v in_o the_o consequence_n of_o his_o reason_n that_o which_o he_o can_v justify_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o false_a prophetess_n of_o thyatira_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o angel_n censure_n because_o he_o be_v reprove_v for_o suffer_v she_o and_o thus_o wear_v lead_v as_o it_o be_v by_o the_o hand_n to_o see_v the_o falsehood_n of_o the_o proposition_n of_o the_o arg_fw-mi before_o by_o himself_o contrive_v for_o a_o corrective_a power_n over_o minister_n can_v be_v firm_o conclude_v either_o from_o the_o commendation_n of_o the_o one_o that_o examine_v they_o which_o false_o call_v themselves_o apostle_n or_o from_o the_o reproof_n of_o the_o other_o that_o suffer_v false_a teacher_n to_o seduce_v the_o people_n for_o put_v the_o case_n the_o d._n be_v a_o archdeacon_n or_o which_o will_v please_v he_o better_o a_o diocesan_n lord_n &_o that_o in_o the_o some_o parish_n under_o his_o government_n corrupt_a teacher_n shall_v âind_v free_a access_n to_o the_o pulpit_n but_o in_o other_o place_n by_o the_o careful_a enquiry_n of_o the_o minister_n and_o churchwarden_n find_v what_o they_o be_v they_o shall_v be_v restreyn_v i_o think_v in_o this_o case_n he_o shall_v highe_o commend_v the_o honest_a care_n of_o the_o one_o and_o sharp_o reprove_v the_o careless_a negligence_n of_o the_o other_o yet_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v from_o his_o commendation_n or_o reproof_n infer_v that_o the_o person_n so_o commend_v or_o reprove_v have_v the_o power_n of_o correct_v and_o silence_v minister_n i_o suppose_v the_o d._n will_v rather_o deride_v the_o simplicity_n of_o such_o a_o disputer_n then_o vouchsafe_v he_o a_o direct_a answer_n reason_v see_v the_o looseness_n of_o the_o d._n reason_v but_o to_o leave_v supposition_n and_o to_o let_v he_o see_v the_o looseness_n of_o his_o reason_n by_o a_o more_o direct_a answer_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n do_v no_o less_o commend_v the_o man_n of_o berea_n for_o their_o diligent_a sift_v the_o apostle_n paul_n doctrine_n act._n 17._o 11._o then_o he_o do_v the_o angel_n of_o ephesus_n for_o examine_v they_o that_o false_o assume_v the_o name_n of_o apostle_n will_v the_o d._n therefore_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o have_v a_o corrective_a power_n over_o that_o holy_a apostle_n and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o it_o be_v require_v of_o every_o private_a christian_a to_o have_v their_o sense_n exercise_v in_o the_o word_n to_o discern_v between_o good_a &_o evil_a heb._n 5._o 14._o to_o try_v the_o spirit_n of_o their_o teacher_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o not_o 1._o joh._n 4._o 1._o to_o bewarre_n of_o false_a prophet_n and_o seducer_n math._n 7._o 15._o and_o 24._o 4._o to_o try_v all_o
freme_v pag._n 58._o of_o the_o answer_n if_o he_o do_v not_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v confirm_v by_o add_v the_o assumption_n viz._n to_o visible_a church_n endue_v with_o power_n of_o ecclesissticall_a government_n the_o presbyter_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v appoint_v loe_o here_o the_o d._n reason_v now_o what_o if_o the_o add_v of_o this_o assumption_n utter_o mar_v the_o fashion_n of_o his_o argument_n have_v he_o not_o then_o spend_v his_o labour_n well_o to_o discover_v his_o own_o heedless_a oversight_n to_o say_v no_o worse_o for_o have_v he_o well_o peruse_v the_o part_n he_o may_v have_v find_v 5._o term_n in_o his_o syllogism_n viz._n 1._o syllogism_n the_o d._n have_v 5._o germe_n in_o one_o syllogism_n presbytery_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n 2._o appoint_v to_o diocese_n not_o to_o parish_n 3._o appoint_v to_o visible_a church_n endue_v with_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n 4._o the_o church_n themselves_o endue_v with_o such_o power_n 5._o diocese_n and_n not_o parish_n to_o redress_v this_o gross_a fault_n if_o so_o simple_a a_o scholar_n as_o the_o refuter_fw-la may_v presume_v to_o give_v any_o direction_n to_o so_o great_a a_o clerk_n as_o mr._n d._n i_o think_v he_o shall_v have_v do_v well_o to_o have_v exchange_v the_o antecedent_n of_o his_o enthymeme_n with_o some_o proposition_n in_o sense_n equivalent_a that_o may_v have_v yield_v the_o same_o predicatum_fw-la which_o his_o conclusion_n carry_v as_o thus_o the_o church_n to_o which_o the_o presbytery_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v appoint_v be_v proper_o diocese_n such_o as_o we_o and_o not_o parish_n or_o thus_o diocese_n such_o as_o we_o and_o not_o parish_n be_v the_o whole_a and_o only_a charge_n of_o the_o presbytery_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o assumption_n then_o to_o be_v add_v must_v be_v one_o of_o these_o viz._n the_o church_n which_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v endue_v with_o the_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n be_v those_o unto_o which_o the_o presbytery_n ordain_v by_o they_o be_v appoint_v or_o thus_o the_o church_n which_o the_o apostle_n endue_v with_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n be_v the_o whole_a &_o only_a charge_n of_o those_o presbytery_n which_o they_o ordain_v so_o the_o conclusion_n will_v natural_o flow_v from_o these_o premise_n to_o wit_n therefore_o the_o church_n which_o the_o apostle_n endue_v or_o be_v endue_v in_o their_o time_n with_o the_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n be_v diocese_n proper_o such_o as_o we_o &_o not_o parish_n which_o of_o these_o soever_o he_o shall_v choose_v the_o proposition_n be_v to_o be_v refuse_v as_o utter_o false_a against_o the_o assumption_n whether_o former_a or_o late_a i_o have_v nothing_o to_o except_v this_o only_a i_o say_v if_o the_o doctor_n shall_v dislike_v the_o late_a as_o too_o narrow_o limit_v by_o those_o word_n whole_a &_o only_a charge_n i_o must_v then_o tell_v he_o his_o syllogism_n be_v also_o herein_o deceitful_a and_o faulty_a that_o his_o proposition_n speak_v of_o a_o appointment_n differ_v from_o that_o which_o he_o intend_v in_o his_o assumption_n the_o feed_n and_o govern_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v but_o a_o part_n yea_o the_o least_o part_n of_o the_o charge_n of_o those_o presbytery_n in_o asmuch_o as_o he_o suppose_v they_o be_v appoint_v also_o to_o a_o other_o more_o principal_a work_n viz._n to_o labour_v the_o conversion_n of_o such_o as_o be_v yet_o enemy_n to_o the_o faith_n and_o not_o member_n of_o the_o church_n but_o if_o he_o will_v acknowledge_v the_o visible_a church_n to_o be_v the_o whole_a and_o only_a charge_n of_o the_o prebytery_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n then_o the_o premise_n of_o his_o syllogism_n do_v make_v war_n the_o one_o against_o the_o other_o for_o the_o assumption_n so_o understand_v direct_o cross_v the_o assumption_n and_o the_o fortification_n thereof_o which_o be_v pag._n 65._o fit_v to_o confirm_v the_o proposition_n or_o antecedene_n of_o his_o main_a argument_n and_o consequent_o through_o their_o side_n it_o pierce_v the_o hart_n of_o the_o proposition_n itself_o for_o if_o the_o visible_a church_n endue_v with_o power_n of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n be_v the_o whole_a &_o only_a charge_n of_o the_o presbytery_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n then_o be_v they_o not_o appoint_v for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o city_n &_o country_n neither_o be_v that_o work_n the_o end_n or_o motive_n that_o sway_v the_o apostle_n to_o ordeyn_a they_o so_o that_o his_o proposition_n which_o affirm_v that_o those_o presbytery_n be_v appoint_v for_o whole_a diocese_n have_v nothing_o to_o support_v it_o moreover_o if_o he_o shall_v dislike_v the_o limitation_n which_o i_o have_v add_v to_o his_o proposition_n restreyn_v it_o to_o such_o diocese_n as_o we_o be_v or_o at_o least_o to_o such_o diocese_n as_o be_v also_o church_n he_o be_v to_o know_v that_o his_o consequence_n be_v naught_o and_o such_o as_o of_o which_o he_o have_v no_o grant_n from_o his_o refuter_fw-la to_o boast_v of_o for_o unless_o it_o be_v presuppose_v that_o the_o diocese_n to_o which_o he_o say_v the_o presbytery_n be_v appoint_v be_v church_n and_o like_a to_o our_o diocesan_n church_n his_o argument_n will_v be_v deceitful_a also_o in_o a_o second_o respect_n to_o wit_n because_o his_o antecedent_n and_o the_o conclusion_n speak_v not_o of_o one_o kind_n of_o diocese_n but_o of_o such_o as_o differ_v toto_fw-la genere_fw-la if_o the_o one_o be_v church_n and_o the_o other_o not_o so_o or_o at_o least_o in_o specie_fw-la if_o they_o be_v diocesan_n church_n unlike_a to_o we_o for_o as_o be_v heretofore_o note_v diocesan_n bishop_n like_v to_o we_o do_v require_v the_o church_n where_o of_o they_o be_v bishop_n to_o be_v diocese_n or_o diocesan_n church_n like_o to_o we_o this_o memorandum_n therefore_o be_v premise_v that_o by_o diocese_n in_o his_o proposition_n we_o be_v to_o understand_v diocesan_n church_n like_v to_o we_o we_o be_v come_v to_o examine_v the_o first_o of_o his_o two_o argument_n which_o himself_o frame_v to_o prove_v the_o proposition_n before_o deny_v in_o manner_n &_o form_n follow_v they_o who_o be_v appoint_v to_o whole_a city_n and_o country_n to_o labour_v so_o far_o at_o 4._o sect._n 4._o they_o be_v able_a the_o conversion_n of_o all_o that_o belong_v to_o god_n be_v appoint_v to_o diocese_n and_o not_o to_o parish_n but_o the_o presbytery_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v appoint_v for_o whole_a city_n and_o country_n thereto_o belong_v to_o labour_v so_o far_o as_o they_o be_v able_a the_o conversion_n of_o all_o that_o belong_v to_o god_n therefore_o the_o presbytery_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n 3_o 44_o pm_n 5_o 7_o 2011_o be_v appoint_v not_o unto_o parish_n but_o unto_o diocese_n that_o be_v to_o diocesan_n church_n like_a to_o we_o this_o proposition_n say_v he_o i_o omit_v as_o take_v it_o for_o grant_v be_v it_o so_o yet_o since_o he_o see_v that_o his_o refuter_fw-la esteem_v the_o consequence_n weak_a of_o that_o argum_fw-la he_o frame_v to_o a_o conclusion_n somewhat_o differ_v he_o may_v well_o have_v be_v jealous_a of_o his_o reject_v this_o proposition_n also_o for_o since_o the_o presbyter_n of_o which_o he_o speak_v be_v plant_v in_o the_o chief_a city_n of_o such_o a_o nation_n as_o the_o apostle_n desire_v to_o conver_n what_o hinder_v but_o the_o country_n annex_v may_v be_v province_n or_o rather_o whole_a nation_n and_o not_o diocese_n proper_o moreover_o how_o can_v they_o be_v say_v to_o be_v appoint_v to_o diocesan_n church_n such_o as_o we_o for_o to_o speak_v of_o other_o diocese_n that_o be_v estrange_v from_o christianity_n be_v to_o rove_v far_o wide_a from_o the_o question_n who_o be_v appoint_v unto_o city_n and_o country_n not_o to_o feed_v and_o govern_v they_o as_o all_o church_n be_v by_o their_o pastor_n but_o to_o labour_v their_o conversion_n that_o yet_o remain_v pagan_n and_o infidel_n to_o provoke_v he_o therefore_o in_o his_o next_o defence_n to_o undertake_v the_o proof_n of_o this_o proposition_n which_o he_o now_o take_v for_o grant_v i_o first_o contradict_v it_o thus_o they_o who_o be_v appoint_v to_o whole_a city_n and_o country_n for_o the_o work_n out_o of_o the_o conversion_n be_v not_o set_v over_o diocesan_n church_n such_o as_o we_o then_o i_o take_v his_o own_o assumption_n with_o the_o help_n thereof_o to_o conclude_v the_o contradictory_n of_o his_o former_a proposition_n in_o this_o manner_n the_o presbytery_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v appoint_v to_o whole_a city_n and_o country_n for_o the_o work_n out_o of_o their_o conversion_n therefore_o the_o presbytery_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o set_v over_o diocesan_n church_n such_o as_o we_o this_o our_o proposition_n oppose_v against_o he_o may_v
power_n of_o the_o truth_n see_v the_o answer_n which_o he_o have_v frame_v to_o oppugn_v it_o be_v not_o only_o evil_a and_o absurd_a but_o though_o perhaps_o against_o his_o will_n and_o meaning_n give_v way_n unto_o it_o for_o from_o his_o own_o grant_n i_o thus_o argue_v to_o infringe_v that_o assertion_n which_o he_o labour_v to_o confirm_v 1._o whosoever_o be_v ordain_v the_o bishop_n of_o any_o church_n he_o receive_v the_o power_n of_o episcopal_a order_n from_o the_o hand_n that_o ordain_v he_o but_o james_n receive_v not_o the_o power_n of_o episcopal_a order_n from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o apostle_n ergo_fw-la neither_o be_v he_o ordain_v by_o they_o the_o bishop_n of_o any_o church_n 2._o again_o whosoever_o by_o his_o designment_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o any_o church_n receive_v only_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n to_o execute_v there_o that_o power_n of_o order_n which_o be_v before_o invest_v in_o his_o person_n he_o receive_v no_o new_a function_n by_o that_o designment_n but_o james_n the_o apostle_n by_o his_o designment_n to_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o church_n at_o jerusalem_n receive_v in_o the_o doctor_n opinion_n only_o the_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n to_o execute_v that_o power_n of_o order_n which_o before_o be_v invest_v in_o his_o person_n therefore_o he_o receive_v no_o new_a function_n by_o that_o designment_n and_o consequent_o he_o be_v not_o ordain_v to_o the_o function_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o that_o church_n to_o these_o argument_n ground_v on_o his_o own_o answer_n i_o add_v this_o that_o follow_v which_o the_o doctor_n be_v willing_a not_o to_o see_v in_o the_o refuter_n answer_v 3._o whosoever_o by_o christ_n ordination_n receive_v all_o ministerial_a power_n with_o ample_a authority_n to_o execute_v the_o same_o inall_a place_n wheresoever_o he_o become_v he_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v receive_v any_o new_a power_n either_o of_o order_n or_o jurisdiction_n by_o a_o designment_n to_o the_o oversight_n or_o care_n of_o any_o particular_a church_n but_o james_n the_o apostle_n by_o christ_n ordination_n receive_v all_o ministerial_a power_n with_o ample_a authority_n to_o execute_v the_o same_o in_o all_o place_n wherever_o he_o become_v ergo_fw-la he_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v receive_v any_o new_a power_n either_o of_o order_n or_o jurisdiction_n by_o his_o designment_n to_o the_o oversight_n &_o care_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n such_o as_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n thus_o leave_v the_o doctor_n to_o his_o best_a thought_n for_o his_o rejoynder_n in_o this_o behalf_n let_v we_o proceed_v to_o the_o next_o exception_n chapt._n 6._o answer_v the_o father_n allege_v by_o the_o doctor_n for_o james_n his_o bishopric_n def._n lib._n 4._o chapt._n sect_n 4._o pag._n 52._o the_o next_o exception_n concern_v the_o age_n or_o antiquity_n of_o those_o 55._o sect._n 1._o add_v sect_n 4._o pa._n 52._o &_o sect_n 2._o pag._n 55._o father_n upon_o who_o testimoney_n the_o doctor_n build_v his_o faith_n for_o james_n his_o ordination_n to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n the_o refuter_fw-la find_v the_o ancient_a of_o his_o witness_n to_o be_v eusebius_n about_o the_o year_n 320._o etc._n etc._n demand_v answer_v p._n whither_o he_o have_v none_o of_o the_o apostle_n disciple_n which_o live_v then_o to_o testify_v his_o ordination_n the_o doctor_n stop_v his_o mouth_n with_o a_o other_o question_n what_o one_o of_o they_o who_o writing_n be_v extant_a he_o can_v have_v allege_v who_o he_o will_v not_o reject_v as_o counterfeit_v which_o be_v a_o plain_a confession_n that_o in_o deed_n he_o have_v none_o that_o be_v worth_a the_o mention_v for_o though_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o clement_n the_o disciple_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v call_v james_n the_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n govern_v the_o holy_a church_n of_o the_o hebrew_n in_o jerusalem_n yet_o as_o if_o his_o conscience_n tell_v he_o that_o his_o epistle_n be_v but_o a_o counterfeit_n he_o add_v but_o suppose_v that_o none_o of_o the_o disciple_n of_o the_o apostle_n in_o those_o few_o writing_n of_o they_o which_o be_v extant_a have_v give_v testimoney_n to_o this_o matter_n be_v not_o the_o testimony_n of_o egesippus_fw-la and_o clement_n who_o both_o live_v in_o the_o very_a next_o age_n to_o the_o apostle_n sufficient_a no_o very_o their_o credit_n be_v too_o weak_a as_o shall_v be_v see_v sect_n 17._o to_o overweigh_v the_o presumption_n before_o allege_v to_o show_v that_o james_n receive_v no_o such_o ordination_n from_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o doct._n stand_v for_o it_o be_v therefore_o but_o his_o vain_a brag_n easy_o to_o be_v reject_v then_o justify_v to_o say_v as_o he_o do_v it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o that_o james_n his_o be_v bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n be_v a_o thing_n as_o notorious_a and_o as_o certain_o know_v among_o christian_n in_o those_o time_n as_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n make_v among_o we_o now_o that_o d._n cranmer_n be_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n in_o k._n h._n the_o 8._o his_o time_n for_o be_v it_o not_o rather_o much_o to_o be_v doubt_v of_o see_v that_o among_o all_o the_o writing_n that_o be_v extant_a of_o ignatius_n irenaeus_n tertullian_n and_o sundry_a other_o in_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n the_o doctor_n can_v find_v any_o one_o testimony_n fit_a for_o his_o purpose_n rem_fw-la adeo_fw-la illustrem_fw-la nullum_fw-la habere_fw-la autorem_fw-la svi_fw-la seculi_fw-la aut_fw-la secundi_fw-la etc._n etc._n portento_fw-mi simile_n est_fw-la sic_fw-la chamierus_n de_fw-fr simone_n de_fw-fr oecum_fw-la pont_n lib._n 3._o pag._n 456._o sic_fw-la ego_fw-la de_fw-la jacobo_n as_o for_o that_o counterfeit_n clement_n before_o name_v he_o rather_o confute_v than_o confirm_v the_o doctor_n assertion_n for_o i_o may_v say_v of_o the_o doctor_n as_o he_o do_v of_o the_o pope_n how_o he_o can_v digest_v that_o lofty_a title_n bishop_n of_o bishop_n which_o clement_n give_v unto_o james_n i_o know_v not_o for_o do_v not_o this_o title_n usual_o ascribe_v to_o he_o as_o the_o doctor_n acknowledge_v as_o strong_o argue_v he_o to_o be_v a_o universal_a pope_n as_o the_o mention_n of_o his_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o the_o hebrew_n in_o jerusalem_n can_v conclude_v he_o to_o be_v their_o diocesan_n bishop_n and_o since_o he_o be_v say_v to_o govern_v not_o only_a sanctum_fw-la hebraeorum_n ecclesiam_fw-la hierosolymis_fw-la sed_fw-la et_fw-la omnes_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la quae_fw-la ubique_fw-la dei_fw-la providentia_fw-la fundaââ_n sunt_fw-la if_o prejudice_n have_v not_o forestall_v the_o doctor_n heart_n he_o will_v never_o have_v forbid_v his_o refuter_fw-la as_o he_o do_v pag._n 55._o to_o collect_v from_o thence_o that_o he_o be_v not_o otherwise_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n that_o be_v not_o in_o any_o other_o function_n then_o over_o all_o other_o church_n for_o do_v not_o the_o d._n measure_v the_o meaning_n of_o this_o phrase_n by_o the_o line_n and_o level_v of_o that_o large_a jurisdiction_n which_o have_v no_o be_v in_o any_o bishop_n for_o many_o hundred_o year_n after_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n though_o call_v universal_a patriarch_n yet_o be_v the_o diocesan_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n alone_o and_o that_o the_o pope_n himself_o though_o he_o clume_n to_o be_v universal_a bishop_n yet_o be_v special_o bishop_n of_o rome_n yet_o as_o if_o he_o be_v hire_v to_o wrest_v this_o testimony_n out_o of_o their_o hand_n that_o bend_v it_o against_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o in_o a_o edition_n of_o that_o epistle_n of_o clement_n publish_v by_o sichardus_fw-la at_o basil_n anno_o 1526_o he_o read_v thus_o sed_fw-la et_fw-la omnibus_fw-la ceclesijs_fw-la which_o signifi_v that_o clemens_n direct_v his_o epistle_n not_o to_o james_n only_o but_o also_o to_o all_o church_n but_o this_o be_v to_o corrupt_v the_o text_n by_o a_o false_a finger_n for_o the_o former_a read_n do_v best_o agree_v with_o the_o title_n before_o give_v to_o james_n bishop_n of_o bishop_n and_o if_o clement_n have_v mean_v to_o join_v any_o other_o with_o james_n in_o the_o inscription_n of_o his_o epistle_n he_o will_v in_o all_o likelihood_n have_v say_v sed_fw-la et_fw-la omnibus_fw-la episcopis_fw-la per_fw-la omnes_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la etc._n etc._n so_o join_v to_o he_o the_o bishop_n of_o other_o church_n rather_o than_o the_o church_n themselves_o in_o the_o next_o place_n because_o the_o doctor_n witness_n be_v all_o of_o they_o 13._o sect._n 2._o add_v sect_n 4._o pag_n 13._o such_o as_o live_v in_o the_o 4._o or_o 5._o age_n after_o christ_n his_o refuter_fw-la put_v he_o in_o mind_n of_o bishop_n andrew_n word_n who_o in_o the_o like_a case_n say_v serm_n pag_n 34._o preach_v at_o hampton_n court_n 1606._o they_o write_v thing_n they_o see_v not_o and_o so_o frame_v matter_n according_a to_o their_o own_o conceit_n and_o many_o time_n
plebs_fw-la ipsa_fw-la maximè_fw-la habet_fw-la potestatem_fw-la vel_fw-la eligendi_fw-la dignos_fw-la sacerdotes_fw-la vel_fw-la indignos_fw-la recusandi_fw-la quod_fw-la et_fw-la ipsum_fw-la videmus_fw-la de_fw-la divina_fw-la authoritate_fw-la descendere_fw-la and_o how_o oft_o do_v austin_n say_v that_o peter_n signify_v the_o church_n and_o bear_v the_o person_n of_o the_o church_n when_o christ_n say_v unto_o he_o tibi_fw-la dabo_fw-la clave_n etc._n etc._n mat._n 16._o august_n tract_n 50._o &_o 124._o in_o johan._n item_n in_o psal_n 108_o &_o de_fw-fr agonia_fw-la christi_fw-la cap._n 30._o and_o gerson_n trilog_n 8._o quest_n clave_n inquit_fw-la datae_fw-la sunt_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o actu_fw-la primo_fw-la &_o petro_n ut_fw-la in_o actu_fw-la secundo_fw-la on_o which_o word_n the_o bishop_n of_o chichester_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o tortus_fw-la pag._n 65._o give_v this_o note_n cum_fw-la unum_fw-la hunc_fw-la nomino_fw-la cum_fw-la illo_fw-la intellige_fw-la omnes_fw-la qui_fw-la constantiae_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la in_o concilio_n omnes_fw-la enim_fw-la idem_fw-la sentiunt_fw-la but_o to_o pass_v by_o many_o other_o the_o word_n of_o ferus_fw-la in_fw-la act._n 11_o be_v worthy_a of_o the_o doctor_n observation_n peter_n the_o apostle_n &_o chief_a of_o the_o apostle_n be_v constrain_v to_o give_v a_o account_n to_o the_o church_n neither_o do_v he_o disdain_n it_o because_o he_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v not_o a_o lord_n but_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n the_o church_n be_v the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n and_o lady_n of_o the_o house_n peter_n a_o servant_n and_o minister_n wherefore_o the_o church_n may_v not_o only_o exact_v a_o account_n of_o her_o minister_n but_o also_o reject_v and_o depose_v they_o if_o they_o be_v not_o fit_a and_o in_o give_v this_o pre-eminence_n to_o the_o church_n above_o peter_n do_v he_o speak_v against_o the_o scripture_n or_o against_o reason_n do_v not_o s._n paul_n acknowledge_v the_o same_o touch_v himself_o and_o his_o fellow_n apostle_n 1._o cor._n 3._o 21._o 22._o 2._o cor._n 4._o 5._o be_v it_o not_o then_o a_o absurd_a fancy_n if_o not_o frenzy_n to_o urge_v as_o the_o doctor_n do_v lib._n 3._o passim_fw-la the_o superiority_n of_o one_o bishop_n in_o a_o whole_a diocese_n or_o province_n above_o all_o the_o presbyter_n and_o people_n thereof_o notwithstanding_o as_o the_o refuter_fw-la do_v no_o where_n say_v so_o neither_o can_v it_o be_v gather_v from_o his_o word_n that_o the_o form_n of_o church-government_n be_v at_o the_o first_o or_o now_o aught_o to_o be_v whole_o democraticall_a or_o popular_a the_o doctor_n be_v not_o ignorant_a as_o appear_v l._n 3._o p._n 2._o &_o 3._o that_o his_o ref_n plead_v for_o the_o aristocratical_a form_n of_o government_n as_o that_o which_o in_o his_o opinion_n ought_v to_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o several_a church_n neither_o do_v he_o therein_o cross_v himself_o or_o any_o of_o his_o fellow_n that_o favour_v the_o parish_n discipline_n for_o they_o all_o as_o i_o be_o persuade_v do_v hold_v the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n to_o be_v a_o mix_a form_n compound_v of_o all_o three_o state_n as_o many_o worthy_a divine_n do_v confident_o maintain_v p._n martyr_n in_o 1._o cor._n 5._o see_v his_o com._n plac_n clas_o 4._o sect_n 9_o baros_n de_fw-fr polit_fw-la civ_o &_o ecclesiastica_fw-la lib._n 2._o pag._n 42._o 43._o d._n whitak_n de_fw-mi roman_a pontiff_n pag._n 13._o 14._o for_o as_o in_o respect_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v the_o head_n not_o only_o of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o general_a but_o also_o of_o every_o particular_a visible_a church_n ephes_n 4._o 15._o 1._o cor._n 12._o 27_o the_o church_n may_v be_v true_o repute_v a_o kingdom_n or_o monarchy_n so_o it_o have_v some_o resemblance_n unto_o a_o monarchy_n in_o regard_n of_o that_o pre-eminence_n which_o the_o pastor_n have_v above_o other_o church-officer_n but_o because_o no_o one_o pastor_n or_o bishop_n have_v power_n to_o govern_v or_o determine_v cause_n ecclesiastical_a pro_fw-la svo_fw-la arbitratu_fw-la after_o his_o pleasure_n but_o ex_fw-la consilio_fw-la compresbyterorum_fw-la by_o the_o counsel_n of_o his_o fellow-elders_a the_o regiment_n of_o the_o church_n more_o proper_o resemble_v a_o aristocracy_n and_o in_o asmuch_o as_o the_o people_n consent_n be_v not_o to_o be_v neglect_v in_o cause_n of_o great_a moment_n it_o agree_v in_o part_n with_o a_o democracie_n notwithstanding_o a_o mere_a democracie_n wherein_o all_o matter_n be_v handle_v of_o all_o aequato_fw-la jure_fw-la by_o a_o equal_a right_n we_o do_v no_o less_o detest_v than_o that_o usurp_a monarchy_n of_o lordly_a prelate_n which_o other_o reform_a church_n have_v abolish_v wherefore_o the_o doctor_n dream_v of_o a_o dry_a summer_n in_o a_o drip_a 8._o section_n 8._o year_n when_o he_o suppose_v in_o his_o three_o fancy_n that_o we_o hold_v the_o law_n of_o church-government_n prescribe_v in_o the_o epistle_n to_o tim._n &_o titus_n to_o have_v be_v provide_v for_o such_o a_o popular_a state_n wherein_o the_o people_n do_v rule_v their_o leader_n they_o be_v provide_v for_o a_o mix_a state_n wherein_o many_o presbyter_n under_o the_o guidance_n of_o one_o pastor_n or_o precedent_n do_v administer_v &_o execute_v all_o matter_n with_o the_o people_n consent_n &_o approbation_n and_o in_o the_o affirmation_n as_o we_o have_v the_o assent_n of_o the_o most_o and_o the_o best_a divine_n of_o late_a time_n calvin_n on_o titus_n 1._o 5._o beza_n on_o tim._n cap._n 5._o 19_o 22._o and_o tit._n 3._o 10._o and_o sundry_a other_o so_o we_o have_v the_o apostle_n own_o warrant_n in_o the_o close_a of_o his_o epistle_n with_o these_o word_n grace_n be_v with_o you_o or_o with_o you_o all_o 2._o tim._n 22._o tit._n 3._o 15._o for_o by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o what_o be_v write_v special_o by_o name_n to_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v intend_v to_o be_v of_o common_a use_n not_o only_o for_o other_o minister_n but_o also_o in_o some_o sort_n to_o all_o the_o saint_n that_o then_o converse_v in_o those_o place_n moreover_o since_o the_o apostle_n charge_v titus_n to_o observe_v in_o the_o ordination_n of_o elder_n that_o order_n which_o he_o have_v before_o enjoin_v he_o tit._n 1._o 5._o whence_o can_v we_o better_o derive_v that_o order_n then_o from_o his_o own_o practice_n and_o his_o fellow-apostle_n who_o use_v aswell_o in_o ordination_n as_o in_o other_o church-affaire_n both_o the_o advice_n and_o help_n of_o other_o minister_n and_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o people_n as_o appear_v by_o these_o scripture_n acts._n 1._o 15._o 23._o 26._o and_o 6._o 2._o 3._o and_o 14._o 23._o and_o 15._o 6._o 22._o 23._o 1._o cor._n 5._o 3._o 4._o &_o 2._o cor._n 2._o 10._o the_o doctor_n therefore_o be_v misledd_v by_o his_o own_o conceit_n when_o he_o imagine_v that_o the_o apostle_n word_n unto_o timothy_n and_o titus_n lay_v not_o hand_n rash_o etc._n etc._n and_o do_v thou_o avoid_v a_o haeretick_n do_v so_o close_o up_o all_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n in_o their_o hand_n that_o neither_o people_n nor_o presbyter_n have_v or_o may_v have_v any_o stroke_n at_o all_o in_o those_o matter_n as_o for_o his_o gibe_a objection_n belike_o the_o whole_a island_n of_o crete_n be_v a_o parish_n too_o it_o deserve_v no_o other_o answer_n then_o this_o when_o he_o justify_v his_o collection_n from_o any_o word_n in_o his_o refuter_n answer_v i_o will_v acknowledge_v he_o for_o a_o honest_a man_n mean_v while_o let_v the_o reader_n take_v notice_n of_o this_o that_o the_o doctor_n in_o a_o few_o leaf_n after_o pag._n 88_o note_v this_o speech_n of_o his_o refuter_fw-la that_o crect_n have_v many_o church_n which_o argue_v necessary_o that_o the_o whole_a island_n can_v not_o be_v one_o only_a parish_n the_o last_o fancy_n false_o feign_v by_o the_o doctor_n be_v this_o that_o the_o popular_a 9_o sect._n 9_o state_n of_o the_o several_a church_n do_v first_o degenerate_v into_o a_o aristocracy_n and_o after_o into_o a_o monarchy_n he_o shall_v have_v say_v that_o the_o well_o temper_a democracie_n do_v degenerate_a first_o into_o a_o simple_a aristocracy_n &_o after_o into_o a_o absolute_a monarchy_n but_o he_o endeavore_v to_o show_v that_o the_o several_a church_n be_v at_o the_o first_o govern_v monarchical_o to_o wit_n by_o the_o apostle_n or_o apostolical_a man_n several_o for_o apostle_n he_o name_v james_n that_o rule_v perpetual_o and_o peter_n and_o paul_n etc._n etc._n for_o a_o time_n and_o of_o apostolical_a man_n that_o be_v perpetual_a governor_n he_o have_v good_a store_n as_o mark_n timothy_n titus_n evodius_n simon_n the_o son_n of_o cleophas_n etc._n etc._n but_o where_o be_v his_o proof_n that_o all_o these_o or_o any_o of_o they_o govern_v monarchical_o and_o by_o their_o sole_a authority_n concern_v jame_v it_o be_v already_o show_v that_o his_o government_n be_v far_o short_a of_o that_o sole_a authority_n which_o our_o bishop_n carry_v
also_o they_o live_v &_o dye_v i_o answer_v have_v he_o not_o by_o as_o good_a proof_n show_v james_n his_o assignment_n to_o the_o church_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o his_o live_n and_o die_v there_o if_o then_o all_o this_o notwithstanding_o it_o be_v true_a that_o james_n be_v not_o proper_o a_o bishop_n do_v he_o not_o reason_n loose_o when_o from_o such_o assignment_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n he_o conclude_v they_o to_o be_v proper_o bishop_n the_o refuter_n second_o answer_n be_v that_o it_o be_v manifest_a by_o zuinglius_fw-la his_o writing_n he_o neither_o think_v they_o be_v nor_o any_o other_o may_v be_v a_o diocesan_n bishop_n whereto_o the_o doctor_n repli_v belike_o he_o speak_v otherwise_o then_o he_o think_v and_o then_o add_v a_o other_o testimony_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la which_o say_v that_o timothy_n be_v a_o bishop_n and_o that_o the_o office_n of_o a_o evangelist_n and_o of_o a_o bishop_n be_v all_o one_o where_o behold_v with_o what_o conscience_n the_o doctor_n wre_v the_o word_n of_o his_o own_o witness_n from_o their_o meaning_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o evident_a to_o they_o that_o peruse_v zuinglius_fw-la his_fw-la writing_n than_o this_o that_o with_o he_o every_o preacher_n of_o the_o gospel_n at_o this_o day_n have_v as_o good_a right_n to_o the_o name_n of_o a_o evangelist_n and_o of_o a_o bishop_n as_o to_o the_o title_n of_o a_o presbyter_n or_o pastor_n vocat_fw-la ad_fw-la se_fw-la paulus_n act._n 20._o presbyterâs_n i._o episcopos_fw-la evangelistas_n vel_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la ministros_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr ecclesia_fw-la fol._n 48._o and_o tom._n 1._o fol._n 115._o in_o his_o parenesis_n to_o the_o city_n of_o helvetia_n affirm_v that_o the_o bishop_n speak_v of_o 1._o tim._n 3._o be_v any_o pastor_n or_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n quo_fw-la in_o loco_fw-la say_v he_o discimus_fw-la omnes_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la ministros_fw-la episcopos_fw-la esse_fw-la et_fw-la dici_fw-la &_o eiusdem_fw-la sententia_fw-la assertorum_fw-la habemus_fw-la hieromimum_fw-la and_o fol._n 117._o have_v cite_v tit._n 1._o 5._o 7._o to_o the_o same_o purpose_n he_o add_v evidenter_v demonstrat_fw-la bis_fw-la locus_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o place_n evident_o show_v that_o a_o bishop_n be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n who_o we_o use_v to_o call_v parochum_fw-la a_o parish_n priest_n or_o minister_n but_o that_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v how_o much_o zuinglius_fw-la mislike_v the_o large_a jurisdiction_n &_o singular_a pre-eminence_n of_o bishop_n at_o this_o day_n in_o use_n and_o that_o he_o be_v too_o great_a a_o favourite_n of_o the_o parish_n discipline_n to_o be_v wrest_v by_o the_o doctor_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o monarchical_a or_o rather_o in_o his_o judgement_n tyrannical_a government_n of_o diocesan_n bishop_n i_o pray_v the_o reader_n to_o have_v patience_n till_o we_o come_v to_o the_o first_o of_o the_o doctor_n 3._o argument_n handle_v in_o the_o three_o part_n of_o this_o reply_n chap._n 11._o contain_v a_o answer_n to_o another_o of_o the_o the_o d._n argument_n concern_v the_o bishopric_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n handle_v sect_n 13-16_a from_o pag._n 98._o to_o 104._o from_o these_o two_o objection_n in_o the_o pursuit_n whereof_o the_o doctor_n 98._o sect._n 1._o add_v sect_n 13._o pag._n 98._o feed_v himself_o with_o a_o vain_a hope_n to_o gain_v some_o advantage_n he_o now_o return_v to_o give_v a_o fresh_a onset_n on_o his_o adversary_n in_o this_o manner_n the_o suppose_a evangelisticall_a function_n of_o timothy_n &_o titus_n be_v to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n and_o admit_v no_o succession_n as_o be_v both_o extraordinary_a &_o temporary_a but_o the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o they_o have_v as_o be_v assign_v to_o certain_a church_n viz._n of_o ephesus_n and_o of_o crect_n consist_v special_o in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n &_o jurisdiction_n be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o their_o parson_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n therefore_o the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o timothy_n &_o titus_n have_v as_o be_v assign_v to_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n be_v not_o extraordinary_a and_o evangelisticall_a this_o argument_n lay_v down_o serm_n pag._n 79._o his_o refuter_fw-la take_v to_o be_v oppose_v against_o the_o antecedent_n of_o that_o objection_n which_o affirm_v timothy_n and_o titus_n to_o be_v evangelist_n and_o who_o will_v not_o have_v so_o judge_v see_v the_o conclusion_n deny_v their_o function_n &_o authority_n to_o be_v evangelisticall_a but_o he_o say_v that_o the_o introduction_n premise_v before_o this_o argument_n hereof_o we_o may_v conclude_v thus_o show_v that_o he_o intend_v not_o to_o deny_v or_o disprove_v that_o antecedent_n but_o to_o bring_v a_o new_a supply_n of_o argument_n to_o prove_v that_o timothy_n and_o titus_n be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n &_o crect_n which_o difference_n i_o refer_v whole_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o indifferent_a reader_n not_o doubt_v but_o he_o will_v discharge_v the_o refuter_fw-la from_o all_o blame_n either_o of_o wilful_a or_o of_o negligent_a mistake_n and_o whereas_o he_o flat_o deni_v that_o he_o do_v deny_v they_o be_v evangelist_n that_o he_o may_v not_o hide_v himself_o under_o a_o cloud_n i_o desire_v he_o plain_o to_o answer_v we_o whither_o they_o remain_v evangelist_n after_o that_o call_n which_o he_o suppose_v they_o have_v to_o be_v bishop_n if_o yea_o why_o do_v he_o insinuate_v the_o contrary_n pag._n 95._o lin_v 24._o etc._n etc._n when_o to_o justify_v this_o that_o they_o be_v not_o evangelist_n but_o pastor_n and_o bp_n he_o say_v that_o after_o they_o be_v place_v the_o one_o in_o ephesus_n the_o other_o in_o crect_n they_o traveil_v not_o up_o and_o down_o as_o in_o former_a time_n when_o they_o accompany_v the_o apostle_n but_o ordinary_o remain_v with_o their_o flock_n if_o not_o why_o make_v he_o his_o reader_n believe_v that_o in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o argument_n above_o mention_v he_o neither_o do_v nor_o do_v intend_v to_o deny_v that_o they_o be_v evangelist_n but_o as_o often_o before_o so_o here_o again_o we_o must_v and_o will_v follow_v he_o in_o his_o own_o way_n when_o he_o say_v his_o purpose_n be_v from_o the_o former_a conclusion_n thus_o to_o argue_v the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n exercise_v in_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n be_v either_o extraordinary_a and_o evangelisticall_a as_o the_o disciplinarian_o teach_v or_o else_o ordinary_a and_o episcopal_a as_o the_o prelatist_n affirm_v but_o it_o be_v not_o extraordinary_a and_o evangelisticall_a therefore_o ordinary_a and_o episcopal_a here_o the_o assumption_n be_v the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o former_a argument_n and_o the_o proposition_n he_o take_v for_o grant_v as_o if_o it_o full_o deliver_v the_o point_n of_o difference_n between_o we_o and_o he_o with_o his_o associate_n in_o the_o cause_n he_o plead_v wherefore_o we_o must_v take_v leave_n to_o lay_v down_o our_o own_o opinion_n more_o clear_o which_o be_v this_o in_o few_o word_n first_o we_o distinguish_v function_n from_o authority_n both_o which_o the_o doct._n confound_v for_o though_o we_o affirm_v their_o function_n there_o exercise_v to_o be_v evangelisticall_a and_o therefore_o extraordinary_a yet_o we_o do_v not_o so_o avouch_v of_o their_o whole_a authority_n nor_o yet_o of_o that_o authority_n or_o power_n of_o ordination_n &_o jurisdiction_n whereof_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o assumption_n of_o his_o former_a argument_n as_o the_o doct._n may_v perceive_v by_o the_o refuter_n word_n whereof_o he_o take_v notice_n pag._n 84._o again_o we_o distinguish_v betwixt_o authority_n simple_o consider_v and_o in_o general_a to_o perform_v the_o work_n of_o preach_v and_o ordain_v etc._n etc._n and_o that_o particular_a or_o personal_a authority_n which_o for_o the_o exercise_n of_o these_o work_n be_v invest_v in_o their_o person_n and_o give_v they_o allowance_n in_o all_o place_n where_o they_o come_v to_o exercise_v the_o work_n of_o their_o call_n and_o therefore_o though_o we_o grant_v as_o before_o be_v note_v the_o authority_n itself_o in_o abstracto_fw-la &_o simple_o consider_v to_o be_v ordinary_o and_o perpetual_o necessary_a yet_o we_o affirm_v their_o personal_a authority_n to_o be_v evangelisticall_a because_o all_o the_o authority_n they_o have_v do_v flow_v from_o their_o evangelisticall_a function_n for_o like_a as_o the_o apostle_n preach_v and_o baptize_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o apostleship_n so_o do_v timothy_n &_o titus_n both_o preach_v and_o impose_v hand_n etc._n etc._n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o evangelistship_n so_o then_o to_o make_v answer_n first_o to_o the_o d._n disjunctive_a argument_n 1._o as_o touch_v the_o function_n which_o timothy_n &_o titus_n exercise_v in_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n we_o affirm_v it_o to_o be_v extraordinary_a and_o evangelisticall_a and_o therefore_o in_o that_o respect_n utter_o reject_v his_o assumption_n 2._o touch_v their_o authority_n consist_v as_o
he_o say_v special_o in_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n if_o he_o take_v it_o personal_o for_o that_o which_o be_v invest_v in_o they_o by_o the_o ministerial_a function_n which_o they_o there_o exercise_v then_o i_o reject_v the_o assumption_n also_o in_o that_o behalf_n but_o if_o it_o be_v take_v simple_o and_o at_o large_a for_o any_o authority_n to_o exercise_v the_o like_a work_n either_o in_o the_o same_o church_n or_o in_o any_o other_o then_o i_o disclaim_v his_o proposition_n for_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o affirm_v this_o authority_n to_o be_v proper_a unto_o evangelist_n that_o we_o hold_v it_o rather_o common_a to_o every_o pastor_n in_o his_o own_o congregation_n let_v the_o reader_n see_v what_o the_o doctor_n observe_v for_o this_o purpose_n pag._n 79._o &_o 84._o and_o what_o we_o have_v add_v cap._n 8._o sect_n 12_o touch_v their_o pre-eminence_n above_o other_o minister_n and_o the_o continuance_n thereof_o in_o the_o precedent_n of_o synod_n now_o to_o come_v to_o his_o argument_n first_o set_v down_o and_o to_o pass_v by_o that_o fault_n of_o mencion_v function_n only_o in_o the_o proposition_n whereas_o 99_o sect._n 2._o add_v pag._n 98._o 99_o authority_n be_v also_o join_v with_o it_o in_o the_o assumption_n and_o conclusion_n the_o assumption_n which_o be_v deny_v by_o the_o refuter_fw-la must_v for_o the_o clear_n of_o his_o true_a meaning_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o member_n the_o one_o serve_v proper_o for_o the_o plain_a &_o natural_a assumption_n viz._n that_o the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o they_o exercise_v in_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n the_o other_o serve_v either_o for_o the_o medius_n terminus_fw-la of_o a_o prosyllogism_n to_o confirm_v the_o former_a or_o at_o least_o for_o a_o explication_n of_o his_o meaning_n therein_o viz._n that_o the_o function_n &_o authority_n which_o they_o have_v or_o exercise_v in_o those_o church_n be_v such_o as_o assign_v they_o to_o the_o particular_a care_n thereof_o and_o consist_v special_o in_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n the_o refuter_fw-la for_o brevity_n sake_n omit_v to_o distinguish_v these_o two_o differ_v proposition_n enfold_v in_o one_o fit_v his_o answer_n to_o the_o late_a affirm_v as_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o therein_o he_o do_v but_o beg_v the_o question_n in_o asmuch_o as_o he_o assume_v for_o beg_v the_o doct._n beg_v truth_n these_o two_o point_n before_o convince_v of_o falsehood_n viz._n 1._o that_o they_o be_v assign_v to_o the_o perpetual_a charge_n of_o those_o church_n 2._o and_o that_o their_o authority_n be_v such_o a_o preheminent_a power_n in_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n as_o he_o ascribe_v elsewhere_o to_o bishop_n if_o prejudice_n or_o rather_o malice_n as_o it_o may_v be_v fear_v have_v not_o blind_v the_o doctor_n he_o may_v have_v aswell_o discern_v this_o as_o some_o other_o have_v do_v that_o borrow_v no_o light_n from_o the_o refuter_fw-la by_o any_o private_a conference_n with_o he_o to_o find_v out_o his_o true_a meaning_n and_o then_o he_o may_v have_v spare_v that_o outrageous_a calumniation_n he_o rove_v and_o rave_v as_o man_n use_v to_o do_v which_o be_v at_o a_o nonplus_n will_v fain_o seem_v to_o answer_v somewhat_o but_o to_o answer_v his_o assumption_n as_o he_o have_v now_o naked_o propound_v it_o viz._n that_o the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o they_o exercise_v in_o ephesus_n and_o crete_n be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n i_o answer_v with_o the_o distinction_n before_o use_v to_o wit_n that_o their_o personal_a authority_n perish_v with_o their_o function_n and_o therefore_o in_o that_o respect_n the_o assumption_n be_v false_a howsoever_o there_o remain_v unto_o perpetual_a succession_n a_o authority_n to_o perform_v the_o same_o ministerial_a work_n which_o they_o exercise_v by_o virtue_n of_o their_o temporary_a function_n so_o that_o if_o he_o will_v prove_v the_o assumption_n in_o that_o sense_n wherein_o it_o be_v deny_v then_o must_v he_o prove_v the_o perpetuity_n not_o only_o of_o their_o authority_n in_o general_a and_o for_o the_o work_v sake_n which_o they_o perform_v but_o also_o of_o their_o particular_a function_n and_o of_o that_o personal_a authority_n which_o they_o there_o exercise_v so_o as_o neither_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o do_v end_n with_o their_o person_n but_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n the_o proof_n therefore_o of_o his_o assumption_n must_v thus_o run_v that_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o be_v ordinary_a and_o perpetual_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o welbeing_n but_o also_o for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n be_v not_o to_o end_v with_o the_o person_n of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n but_o the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o they_o exercise_v in_o ephesus_n &_o crect_n be_v ordinary_a and_o perpetual_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o well-being_n but_o also_o for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n therefore_o the_o function_n and_o authority_n which_o they_o there_o exercise_v be_v not_o to_o end_v in_o their_o person_n but_o to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n here_o the_o assumption_n be_v deny_v because_o however_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v perpetual_o necessary_a yet_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o every_o church_n a_o evangelist_n that_o be_v to_o say_v one_o endow_v with_o that_o peculiar_a function_n &_o personal_a authority_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n have_v for_o the_o good_a order_n and_o execute_v of_o that_o power_n the_o doctor_n say_v he_o do_v not_o affirm_v that_o which_o be_v deny_v scz_n that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o evangelist_n in_o every_o church_n neither_o be_v he_o willing_a to_o see_v that_o his_o assumption_n do_v both_o in_o effect_n affirm_v as_o much_o &_o plain_o avouche_v what_o he_o dare_v not_o to_o justify_v to_o wit_n that_o the_o very_a function_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n exercise_v be_v perpetual_o necessary_a not_o only_o for_o the_o well-being_n but_o also_o for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n to_o avoid_v this_o gross_a absurdity_n he_o will_v needs_o now_o divide_v their_o 101._o sect._n 3._o add_v sect_n 14._o pag_n 100_o 101._o function_n from_o their_o authority_n which_o hitherto_o he_o have_v conjoin_v for_o thus_o he_o explain_v his_o assumption_n the_o function_n which_o timothy_n and_o titus_n exercise_v be_v ordinary_a and_o their_o authority_n perpetual_o necessary_a etc._n etc._n of_o which_o two_o point_n he_o say_v his_o refuter_fw-la grant_v the_o late_a &_o do_v not_o touch_v the_o former_a as_o if_o the_o former_a branch_n can_v escape_v his_o touch_n when_o his_o whole_a assumption_n be_v reject_v as_o false_a or_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n betwixt_o that_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n in_o general_a which_o the_o refuter_fw-la grant_v to_o be_v perpetual_o necessary_a and_o that_o peculiar_a authority_n which_o be_v invest_v in_o timothy_n and_o titus_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o particular_a function_n which_o be_v before_o deny_v to_o be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n but_o in_o truth_n as_o he_o have_v d_o o_o sweet_a d_o now_o distribute_v and_o construe_v the_o part_n of_o his_o assumption_n in_o the_o second_o he_o idle_o affirm_v what_o be_v never_o deny_v and_o so_o leave_v untouched_a the_o point_n which_o he_o shall_v have_v prove_v and_o in_o the_o first_o he_o offend_v more_o gross_o for_o he_o borrow_v the_o conclusion_n of_o his_o first_o argument_n to_o make_v good_a the_o assumption_n of_o the_o same_o before_o he_o prove_v the_o function_n of_o timothy_n &_o titus_n to_o be_v ordinary_a &_o episcopal_a because_o it_o be_v not_o extraordinary_a and_o evangelisticall_a and_o now_o to_o prove_v that_o their_o function_n be_v continue_v in_o their_o successor_n and_o therefore_o not_o extraordinary_a and_o evangelisticall_a he_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o ordinary_a function_n and_o the_o same_o which_o the_o bishop_n that_o succeed_v they_o do_v exercise_v and_o to_o make_v a_o mend_n for_o this_o beg_v the_o doct._n beg_v impudent_a beg_n he_o multipli_v his_o default_n by_o heap_v up_o many_o assertion_n whereof_o some_o be_v apparent_o false_a and_o the_o rest_n no_o less_o doubtful_a than_o the_o point_n which_o he_o indeavore_v to_o justify_v for_o first_o it_o be_v false_a which_o he_o say_v of_o timothy_n and_o titus_n that_o in_o they_o there_o be_v nothing_o extraordinary_a but_o their_o not_o limitation_n to_o any_o certain_a church_n &_o so_o be_v that_o which_o he_o add_v to_o prove_v it_o viz._n that_o their_o call_n to_o the_o ministry_n be_v ordinary_a and_o their_o gift_n attain_a
by_o ordinary_a mean_n for_o himself_o interprete_v the_o apostle_n word_n 1._o tim._n 4._o 14._o neglect_v not_o the_o gift_n that_o be_v in_o thou_o &_o be_v give_v the_o by_o pprophecy_n etc._n etc._n of_o his_o call_n to_o the_o ministry_n not_o by_o humane_a suffrage_n but_o by_o divine_a revelation_n &_o by_o the_o commandment_n or_o oracle_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n lib._n 4._o p._n 141._o his_o call_n therefore_o to_o the_o ministry_n by_o his_o own_o confession_n must_v be_v extraordinary_a 2._o neither_o can_v it_o be_v deny_v to_o be_v extraordinary_a in_o titus_n that_o the_o apostle_n commit_v to_o his_o church_n the_o finish_n of_o his_o own_o work_n for_o the_o first_o establish_v of_o the_o church_n in_o creta_n and_o furnish_v they_o with_o bishop_n or_o elder_n to_o instruct_v they_o for_o himself_o confess_v that_o the_o church_n which_o be_v yet_o in_o constitute_v and_o unfurnished_a with_o presbyter_n to_o teach_v they_o have_v no_o need_n of_o a_o bishop_n to_o govern_v they_o lib._n 4._o pag._n 63._o 3._o in_o like_a manner_n this_o large_a commission_n not_o confine_v to_o any_o one_o church_n or_o diocese_n but_o with_o equal_a charge_n extend_v over_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o whole_a island_n be_v more_o than_o ordinary_a see_v the_o ordinary_a bishop_n and_o elder_n be_v restreyn_v to_o the_o oversight_n of_o one_o only_a church_n or_o flock_n as_o appear_v by_o act._n 20._o 28._o &_o 14._o 23._o phil._n 1._o 1._o and_o the_o doctor_n that_o have_v seek_v all_o record_n he_o can_v meet_v with_o for_o the_o next_o successor_n of_o titus_n can_v find_v none_o that_o have_v the_o like_a extent_n of_o jurisdiction_n till_o the_o next_o age_n after_o the_o apostle_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v a_o apparent_a difference_n between_o he_o that_o the_o doct._n mention_v and_o titus_n as_o be_v before_o observe_v cap._n 8._o sect_n 13._o next_o before_o this_o 4._o moreover_o it_o be_v extraordinary_a that_o timothy_n &_o titus_n be_v authorize_v to_o command_v and_o to_o speak_v with_o command_a authority_n 1._o tim._n 1._o 3_o &_o 4._o 11._o &_o 5._o 7._o tit._n 2._o 15._o for_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n know_v that_o this_o be_v rather_o apostolic_a then_o suit_v with_o the_o function_n of_o bishop_n ignatius_n in_o ep_n ad_fw-la rom._n know_v his_o own_o measure_n will_v not_o command_v as_o a_o apostle_n but_o exhort_v etc._n etc._n but_o because_o these_o man_n by_o their_o daily_a conversation_n with_o the_o apostle_n know_v perfect_o his_o doctrine_n and_o do_n the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o which_o they_o be_v send_v be_v to_o receive_v direction_n from_o they_o and_o to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o their_o instruction_n 1._o cor._n 4._o 17._o &_o 16_o 10._o 16._o 2._o cor._n 7_o 13._o 2._o tim._n 2._o 2._o &_o 3._o 10._o 5._o yea_o even_o in_o gift_n and_o the_o way_n of_o attain_v they_o d._n downame_n betters_n do_v acknowledge_v this_o extraordinary_a pre-eminence_n that_o they_o be_v endow_v with_o extrordinarie_a gift_n as_o the_o reveal_n of_o secret_n and_o discern_v of_o spirit_n and_o that_o they_o have_v their_o knowledge_n for_o the_o most_o part_n infuse_v by_o revelation_n perpet_n govern_v pag._n 88_o bishop_n barlow_n serm_n in_o act._n 20._o 28_o fol._n 6._o and_o since_o some_o of_o these_o extraordinary_a preeminence_n than_o shine_v most_o clear_o when_o they_o be_v assign_v to_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n it_o follow_v inevitable_o that_o their_o function_n be_v even_o at_o that_o time_n extraordinary_a and_o therefore_o not_o episcopal_a but_o evangelisticall_a now_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o their_o function_n be_v the_o same_o ordinary_a function_n which_o their_o successor_n &_o all_o other_o presbyter_n do_v exercise_v because_o 1._o they_o be_v assign_v to_o certain_a church_n as_o the_o pastor_n thereof_o 2._o ordain_v thereto_o by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n 3._o and_o by_o that_o ordination_n furnish_v with_o the_o power_n of_o ordination_n and_o jurisdiction_n what_o else_o do_v he_o then_o endeavour_n to_o justify_v the_o point_n controvert_v by_o other_o no_o less_o doubtful_a if_o not_o apparent_o false_a to_o return_v now_o to_o that_o assumption_n which_o at_o the_o first_o affirm_v joint_o that_o the_o very_a function_n of_o timothy_n &_o titus_n aswell_o as_o their_o authority_n 4._o sect._n 4._o be_v both_o ordinary_a and_o perpetual_o necessary_a etc._n etc._n it_o be_v most_o plain_a by_o the_o reason_n add_v in_o his_o sermon_n pag._n 79._o before_o he_o bring_v in_o his_o conclusion_n that_o he_o then_o intend_v as_o his_o word_n signify_v to_o justify_v the_o perpetuity_n of_o their_o function_n for_o the_o word_n of_o his_o reason_n be_v these_o if_o while_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o live_v it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o shall_v substitute_v in_o the_o church_n already_o plant_v such_o as_o timothy_n &_o titus_n furnish_v with_o episcopal_a power_n then_o much_o more_o after_o their_o decease_n have_v the_o church_n need_v of_o such_o governor_n to_o this_o connexive_a proposition_n himself_o add_v the_o assumption_n and_o conclusion_n pag._n 104._o follow_v but_o the_o former_a be_v evident_a by_o the_o apostle_n practise_v in_o ephesus_n &_o crect_n and_o all_o other_o apostolical_a church_n therefore_o the_o latter_a may_v not_o be_v deny_v with_o what_o face_n now_o can_v the_o doctor_n deny_v that_o this_o argument_n aim_v at_o the_o perpetual_a necessity_n for_o all_o church_n not_o only_o of_o that_o authority_n or_o power_n which_o he_o call_v episcopal_a but_o also_o of_o the_o very_a office_n or_o function_n of_o bishop_n such_o as_o he_o affirm_v timothy_n &_o titus_n to_o have_v be_v his_o complaint_n therefore_o be_v very_o injurious_a as_o we_o have_v elsewhere_o show_v to_o the_o full_a when_o he_o charge_v his_o refuter_fw-la with_o wrong_v he_o in_o say_v that_o he_o make_v this_o episcopal_a power_n perpetual_o necessary_a for_o the_o very_o be_v of_o the_o visible_a church_n &_o that_o he_o contradict_v himself_o in_o another_o place_n when_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o where_o the_o episcopal_a government_n may_v not_o be_v have_v a_o other_o may_v be_v admit_v but_o albeit_o the_o doctor_n be_v loath_a to_o confess_v himself_o guilty_a yet_o be_v it_o a_o sign_n of_o remorse_n that_o he_o refuse_v to_o maintain_v that_o necessity_n of_o the_o episcopal_a function_n which_o his_o argument_n at_o first_o direct_o conclude_v howbeit_o he_o proceed_v in_o false_a accusation_n against_o his_o refuter_fw-la in_o say_v he_o do_v but_o elude_v his_o reason_n with_o a_o malepert_a speech_n because_o he_o wish_v he_o not_o to_o wave_v &_o crave_v but_o to_o prove_v the_o question_n for_o do_v he_o not_o crave_v rather_o than_o prove_v that_o which_o he_o assume_v for_o a_o round_a the_o d._n wave_v and_o crave_v &_o dance_v the_o round_a evident_a truth_n when_o he_o give_v we_o no_o other_o argument_n than_o his_o own_o naked_a affirmance_n that_o it_o be_v evident_a etc._n etc._n to_o justify_v the_o assumption_n or_o antecedent_n of_o his_o reason_n viz._n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a while_o the_o apostle_n live_v to_o substitute_n in_o the_o church_n already_o plant_v man_n furnish_v with_o episcopal_a power_n &_o therein_o like_a to_o timothy_n &_o titus_n and_o do_v he_o not_o wave_v to_o and_o fro_o or_o rather_o go_v back_o again_o to_o the_o first_o point_n controvert_v in_o this_o whole_a chapter_n when_o he_o avouch_v in_o the_o same_o assumption_n that_o timothy_n &_o titus_n be_v furnish_v with_o episcopal_a power_n when_o the_o apostle_n paul_n substitute_v they_o in_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n wherefore_o if_o his_o drift_n be_v in_o this_o division_n such_o as_o he_o avouch_v in_o the_o entrance_n thereof_o viz._n by_o a_o new_a supply_n of_o argument_n to_o prove_v timothy_n &_o titus_n to_o have_v be_v bishop_n of_o ephesus_n and_o crect_n the_o issue_n of_o all_o his_o reason_n be_v no_o better_a than_o a_o plain_a dance_v the_o round_a in_o this_o fashion_n their_o function_n and_o authority_n be_v episcopal_a because_o it_o be_v not_o evangelisticall_a for_o it_o die_v not_o with_o their_o person_n and_o therefore_o be_v not_o evangelisticall_a it_o die_v not_o with_o their_o person_n because_o it_o be_v ordinary_a and_o perpetual_o necessary_a etc._n etc._n for_o if_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o have_v man_n furnish_v with_o episcopal_a power_n while_o the_o apostle_n live_v it_o be_v much_o more_o necessary_a after_o their_o death_n now_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a while_o they_o live_v it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o apostle_n practise_v in_o furnish_v timothy_n and_o titus_n with_o episcopal_a power_n at_z ephesus_z and_o in_o crect_n who_o see_v not_o by_o all_o this_o his_o discourse_n that_o we_o be_v now_o just_a where_o we_o begin_v all_o this_o wave_v therefore_o from_o one_o
creta_n have_v as_o yet_o receive_v no_o firm_a support_n no_o not_o from_o humane_a evidence_n much_o less_o from_o the_o holy_a scripture_n chap._n 13._o concern_v evodius_n linus_n mark_n simeon_n &_o other_o who_o the_o d._n say_v the_o apostle_n ordain_v bishop_n the_o doct._n now_o leave_v the_o scripture_n search_v after_o other_o ancient_a 112._o sect._n 1._o add_v sect_n 20._o pa._n 112._o record_n to_o see_v if_o he_o can_v find_v any_o other_o place_n where_o or_o person_n who_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v bishop_n which_o if_o we_o shall_v whole_o overpasse_v in_o silence_n we_o shall_v neither_o wrong_v he_o nor_o the_o cause_n see_v the_o record_n of_o man_n subject_a to_o error_n &_o drink_v in_o many_o error_n through_o oversight_n or_o want_n of_o judgement_n can_v substantial_o conclude_v the_o question_n now_o in_o hand_n as_o have_v be_v often_o observe_v but_o because_o he_o glori_v though_o without_o cause_n as_o shall_v appear_v in_o answer_n to_o his_o next_o page_n that_o the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n put_v his_o refuter_fw-la to_o silence_n we_o will_v enter_v into_o a_o near_a search_n after_o the_o truth_n &_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o we_o shall_v lay_v open_a to_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o indifferent_a reader_n both_o the_o falsehood_n of_o some_o of_o his_o record_n and_o his_o false_a or_o deceitful_a handle_n of_o the_o rest_n and_o first_o he_o begin_v with_o antioch_n which_o as_o he_o say_v serm_n pag._n 81._o have_v the_o first_o bishop_n after_o jerusalem_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n peter_n and_o paul_n about_o the_o year_n of_o the_o lord_n 45._o witness_v eusebius_n chron._n anno_fw-la 45_o and_o hist_n lib._n 3._o ca._n 22._o and_o iguat_fw-la ad_fw-la antioch_n i_o answer_n there_o be_v many_o part_n of_o s._n luke_n sacred_a ââory_n that_o with_o hold_v we_o from_o acknowledge_v any_o such_o episcopal_a superiority_n in_o evodius_n as_o the_o doctor_n ascribe_v to_o he_o for_o many_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n be_v record_v concern_v the_o church_n at_o antioch_n which_o fall_v out_o after_o the_o 45._o year_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o mention_v of_o evodius_n much_o less_o of_o his_o bishopric_n after_o the_o death_n of_o herod_n which_o be_v in_o the_o end_n of_o the._n 3._o year_n of_o claudius_n euseb_n lib._n 2._o ca._n 9_o ex_fw-la josepho_n and._n 45._o of_o christ_n as_o euseb_n account_v in_o chron._n a_o 45._o paul_n and_o barnabas_n return_v from_o jerusalem_n to_o antioch_n acts._n 12._o 23._o 25_o at_o which_o time_n there_o be_v certain_a prophet_n and_o teacher_n there_o by_o who_o imposition_n of_o hand_n paul_n &_o barnabas_n be_v separate_v to_o the_o work_n whereunto_o the_o holy_a ghost_n call_v they_o cap._n 13._o 1._o 2._o 3._o now_o if_o evodius_n have_v be_v the_o bishop_n of_o that_o church_n at_o this_o time_n will_v s._n luke_n have_v overpass_v his_o name_n in_o silence_n when_o he_o rekon_v up_o the_o principal_a teacher_n that_o then_o be_v there_o and_o if_o peter_n have_v go_v after_o his_o imprisonment_n to_o antioch_n there_o to_o constitute_v evodius_n his_o successor_n will_v not_o s._n luke_n have_v give_v some_o notice_n of_o his_o be_v there_o with_o paul_n again_o when_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n come_v back_o to_o antioch_n they_o gather_v the_o church_n together_o and_o rehearse_v all_o that_o god_n have_v do_v by_o they_o &_o there_o abide_v a_o long_a time_n with_o the_o disciple_n cap._n 14._o 27._o 28._o in_o this_o their_o stay_n there_o grow_v that_o dissension_n about_o circumcision_n which_o occasion_v that_o meeting_n at_o jerusalem_n to_o end_v the_o question_n cap._n 15._o 1._o 2._o etc._n etc._n where_o be_v evodius_n all_o this_o while_n be_v he_o a_o nonresident_a from_o his_o charge_n have_v he_o be_v the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n and_o there_o resident_a how_o be_v it_o that_o we_o hear_v nothing_o of_o his_o enterteyn_a paul_n and_o barnabas_n at_o their_o return_n and_o of_o their_o relate_n to_o he_o as_o paul_n do_v afterward_o to_o james_n at_o jerusalem_n cap._n 21._o 18._o 19_o the_o success_n of_o their_o traveile_n why_o hear_v we_o nothing_o of_o his_o partake_n in_o the_o controversy_n either_o with_o or_o against_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n &_o why_o nothing_o of_o his_o go_v up_o to_o the_o synod_n at_o jerusalem_n for_o who_o more_o fit_a to_o be_v employ_v in_o such_o a_o business_n than_o their_o bishop_n for_o which_o part_n soever_o he_o take_v it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o church_n instruction_n in_o all_o succeed_a age_n that_o as_o the_o angel_n of_o the_o asian_a church_n apoc._n 2._o &_o 3._o so_o he_o shall_v have_v his_o due_a praise_n or_o dispraise_v for_o resist_v or_o support_v those_o false_a teacher_n that_o disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n to_o go_v forward_o as_o the_o the_o story_n lead_v after_o the_o the_o synod_n be_v end_v judas_n and_o silas_n be_v send_v with_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n unto_o antioch_n aâd_a letter_n be_v write_v not_o to_o the_o bishop_n but_o to_o the_o brethren_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o they_o be_v according_o deliver_v to_o the_o multitude_n assemble_v who_o rejoice_v for_o the_o consolation_n cap._n 15._o 22._o 23._o 30._o 31._o judas_n and_o silas_n stay_v there_o for_o a_o time_n so_o do_v paul_n &_o barnabas_n till_o they_o be_v so_o stir_v that_o they_o part_v company_n vers_fw-la 32._o 35._o 39_o 40_o but_o before_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n be_v divide_v peter_n come_v thither_o be_v withstand_v by_o paul_n to_o his_o face_n for_o that_o offence_n which_o he_o give_v in_o withdraw_a himself_o from_o the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o gentile_n as_o paul_n himself_o relate_v gal._n 2._o 11._o 12._o 13._o in_o all_o these_o event_n what_o do_v evodius_n worthy_a the_o name_n or_o place_n of_o a_o bishop_n endow_v with_o such_o a_o singularity_n of_o power_n and_o honour_n above_o all_o other_o teacher_n though_o of_o a_o high_a degree_n than_o presbyter_n as_o long_o as_o they_o be_v within_o his_o diocese_n if_o we_o may_v believe_v the_o doctor_n pag._n 136._o lib._n 3._o ought_v not_o he_o to_o have_v interpose_v his_o episcopal_a authority_n in_o command_v his_o people_n to_o keep_v the_o decree_n ordain_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o in_o appease_v those_o contention_n which_o arise_v between_o paul_n and_o peter_n and_o between_o barnabas_n and_o paul_n while_o they_o converse_v within_o his_o jurisdiction_n surely_n what_o ever_o the_o d._n conceive_v of_o these_o matter_n who_o can_v persuade_v themselves_o that_o s._n luke_n and_o s._n paul_n will_v have_v bury_v in_o silence_n the_o name_n office_n and_o endeavour_n of_o evodius_n if_o he_o have_v be_v so_o long_o before_o ordain_v by_o peter_n and_o paul_n to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o antioch_n as_o for_o eusebius_n his_o chronicle_n it_o do_v too_o much_o discredit_v itself_o 2._o sect._n 2._o to_o be_v credit_v of_o we_o in_o this_o case_n for_o it_o say_v that_o peter_n in_o the_o last_o year_n of_o tiberius_n which_o be_v the._n 39_o of_o christ_n place_v his_o chaiâe_n at_o antioch_n and_o there_o sit_v 25._o year_n and_o that_o in_o the_o 2._o year_n of_o claudius_n he_o remove_v to_o rome_n and_o there_o sit_v also_o 25._o year_n because_o both_o these_o computation_n can_v stand_v together_o the_o first_o 25._o year_n be_v general_o esteem_v a_o error_n and_o reduce_v to_o 7._o year_n but_o yet_o these_o absurdity_n remain_v 1._o that_o peter_n abode_n 7._o year_n at_o antioch_n and_o his_o remove_n to_o rome_n in_o the_o second_o of_o claudius_n can_v accord_v with_o s._n luke_n story_n for_o his_o continuance_n in_o judea_n and_o his_o imprisonment_n by_o herod_n not_o long_o before_o the_o death_n of_o herod_n see_v doctor_n reynolds_n conf._n with_o hart._n cap._n 6._o divis_fw-la 3._o and_o d._n whit._n de_fw-fr pont_n rom._n quest_n 3._o pag_n 346._o 347._o 2._o that_o peter_n remove_v from_o antioch_n to_o rome_n in_o the_o 2._o year_n of_o claudius_n contradict_v the_o d._n assertion_n scz_o that_o evodius_n be_v ordain_v bishop_n of_o antioch_n by_o peter_n and_o paul_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 45_o which_o be_v the._n 3._o year_n of_o claudius_n by_o eusebius_n his_o own_o account_n notwithstanding_o i_o deny_v not_o but_o there_o may_v be_v a_o truth_n in_o the_o main_a point_n avouch_v by_o eusebius_n and_o ignatius_n to_o wit_n that_o evodius_n be_v the_o pastor_n or_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n there_o place_v before_o ignatius_n for_o a_o parish-bishoprick_n that_o be_v the_o function_n of_o a_o bishop_n set_v over_o one_o particular_a congregation_n be_v grant_v by_o the_o refuter_fw-la to_o be_v establish_v every_o where_n by_o the_o apostle_n but_o that_o function_n of_o a_o diocesan_n bishop_n which_o the_o doct._n contend_v for_o be_v deny_v and_o worthy_o see_v it_o be_v